Digitized by the Internet Archive
in 2007 with funding from
IVIicrosoft Corporation
http://www.archive.org/details/budgetoflettersfOOmaclrich
is;i
A BUDGET
OP
LETTERS FROM JAPAN
REMINISCENCES OF WORK AND
TRAVEL IN: J>:?AK, /
1 »»»,«, •'»
ARTHUR COLLINS MACLAY, A.M., LL.B.
FuKMKKLY InsTKUCTOR OF ENGLISH IN THE Ko-GaKKO-RiO,
ToKio, Japan
NEW YORK
A. C. ARMSTRONG & SON
714 Broadway
1886
V
Copyright, 1886,
By ARTHUR COLLINS MACLAY.
Press of J. J. Little & Ca
Astor Place, New York.
I DEDICATE THIS BOOK
TO THE MEMORY
OF
MY MOTHER
47ii346
PREFACE
During my leisure hours, while a sojourner in " the land
of the gods and of the rising sun," I made it a practice — partly
as a matter of recreation, and partly from a desire to secure
accurate information — to carefully reduce to writing my ob-
servations and experiences while dwelling in that beautiful
country, in order that I might always have something tangi-
ble wherewith to refresh my memory in coming years when
those vivid impressions had become dimmed through lapse
of time. In the course of years, these " wayside jottings " ac-
cumulated in a manner quite surprising to myself Throw-
ing out all matter that had been dwelt upon to any extent by
other writers upon Japan, and retaining only that which
seemed to me to be fresh material upon this subject, I reduced
the substance of my journals to a book, adopting the form of
correspondence as being conversational in its nature and
best suited for conveying to other minds the results of my own
observations and experiences. Submitting the work to several
impartial readers, I was strongly urged by them to have it
published as containing matter of general interest presented
in a readable manner. Bowing to their judgment in the mat-
ter, I now submit this " Budget of Letters " to the individual
opinion of each reader, hoping that each may derive as much
profit and pleasure from the perusal thereof as I have derived
from the composing.
Arthur C. Maclay.
32 Park Place, New York City,
July I, 1886.
EXPLANATORY REMARKS.
New York City, February i, 1886.
Dear Public:
Inasmuch as introductions are, subjectively and
objectively, a bore, permit me to be very brief in
introducing to you my friend Theophilus Pratt.
He was a school-teacher in Japan for four years.
He taught in various parts of the Japanese Em-
pire from the year 1873 to the year 1878. During
that time he wrote me quite a number of letters,
which to me were very interesting. They are
upon a variety of topics, including house-keeping,
rebellions, and assassinations. They describe the
halcyon days of school-teaching in Japan. They
also touch upon events of general interest to
Americans and Europeans.
These letters, I repeat, were very interesting to
me. Hence I naturally inferred that they might
interest others. Therefore I have arranged them
in book form, and now present them for your
perusal. Hoping that our tastes in tMs matter
will coincide, I remain.
Very respectfully yours,
Julius Marcellus Van Tag.
CONTENTS.
LETTER I.
» PAGB
The Farewell i
LETTER IL
A Voyage Across the Pacific 6
LETTER in.
Yokohama 2X
LETTER IV.
HlROSAKl 35
LETTER V.
A Gumpse OP Old Feudal Times in Japan 57
LETTER VI.
A Few Ideas About Life in the Interior 81
LETTER VII.
A Tragedy. .., , 99
LETTER VIII.
A Few Reminiscences iii
•/
LETTER IX.
ToKio 130
Vlll CONTENTS.
LETTER X.
PAGB
School-teaching in Tokio 162
LETTER XL
A Summer Vacation 173
LETTER XIL
Missionary Work in Japan 196
LETTER XIIL
A Trip Through Classic Japan 219
LETTER XIV.
Kioto 243
LETTER XV.
An Excursion to Nara 258
LETTER XVI.
Fujiyama 272
LETTER XVII.
The Satsuma Rebellion 287
LETTER XVIII.
HlYEISAN 303
LETTER XIX.
Social Problems in Japan 333
LETTER XX.
Our Imperial Cousins 365
LETTER XXL
Farewell to Japan 385
ILLUSTRATIONS.
PAGB
The Yomei Gateway Frontispiece
Casting up Accounts 21
iwa-ki-san 35
Street Vender 43
Gossiping at the Well 51
Old-style Warriors 57
Third Moat of the Tokio Castle 68
Our Postal Service 81
May^bara 99
Street Scene in Hirosaki. iii
AiNos 130
The Ubiquitous Jinrikisha 145
The Kago 162
The Tomb op Tokugaw a Iyeyas i73
GuMPSE OP Chiusenji Lake 186
View of the Third Terrace, Nikko Temples 196
The Citadel of Owari Castle 219
The Great Bell at Dai-Butz Temple, Kioto, 243
The Death of Buddha 258
Image of Dai-Butz at Kamakura. 272
The Citadel of Kumamoto Castle 287
Ruins of the Citadel op Aidzu Castle 303
A Quiet Corner in a Buddhist Cemetery 333
At Home 346
The Three Estates 3^5
A BUDGET OF LETTERS
FROM JAPAN.
LETTER I.
THE FAREWELL.
San Francisco, California, October lo, 1873.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
I AM off for Japan. I left New York in such a
hurry that I was unable to give you a parting call.
I therefore present my apologies and explanations
by letter. I expect to be gone for three or four
years ; and I wish to open a regular correspondence
with you during my sojourn abroad. If you agree
to this plan, be so kind as to notify me to that
effect.
Why did I decide so suddenly to go to Japan ?
Permit me to explain. You will remember that
my studies were interrupted by the failure of my
eyesight last year. This inopportune event laid
me on the shelf, colloquially speaking. About six
weeks ago I received a letter from my friend
Adamson, in Yokohama, urging me to go out to
S' : ■' ; ' , ■ LE7^TERS FROM JAPAN.
Japan and teach school. He said the work would
be agreeable and not too hard for my eyes. He
also said that the pecuniary considerations were by
no means to be overlooked. He advised me to go
right on to Yokohama so as to be ready to make
application for the first vacancy that might occur.
This was the only way to do, for there was no
probability that a Japanese delegation would wait
upon me in the United States. He said I might
have to wait a year, or I might have to wait only
a month, for one of these flitting opportunities.
In almost every transaction in life we are obliged
to incur a certain amount of risk. Success is the
result of an ever-varying equation. The science of
life is to calculate that there is a reasonable prob-
ability of a given set of circumstances producing a
plus quantity, and then to go ahead. In the pres-
ent case, the circumstances and conditions augur
well for success.
The journey across the continent was not spe-
cially exciting. We came through from New York
with the same car-load of passengers with which
we started. We had the usual assortment of
travelers. There was the bridal couple going to
visit the Yosemite. There was the Englishman
returning to China via America despite the warning
of anxious friends who had cautioned him to be-
ware of the free fights and the railway disasters of
the reckless Americans. There was the elderly
lady with spectacles, who had come to write a
book on Mormonism, and wanted to silence all
THE FAREWELL. 3
assailants with the fact that she had seen the things
therein stated with her own eyes and could not be
mistaken. There was the man going to get up a
lecture on the Chinese immigration question, and
wanted to convince his audiences of his impar-
tiality by stating that he had been in California
and could testify whereof he knew. And then
there was the party of ubiquitous "Globe-Trot-
ters " with their Cook's Guide, We were given to
understand that they represented several millions
of dollars and also a rare assortment of refinement
and culture. And, finally, there were Mrs. What's-
her-name, from Boston, and her husband, — but he
didn*t count. She had strong scientific tastes, and
made many very wise observations. She thought
that the country, through which we passed yester-
day, gave strong evidence of glacial erosion. To-
day she wishes that she could obtain some of those
fossils in the ledge of rocks to our right, for she
feels positive that the place gives indications of
much geological interest. Her meek husband then
expresses profound regret that the sordid aspirations
of the lucre-loving railroad company will not allow
the scientific passengers to spend an hour or two per
day at these carboniferous outcroppings. She then
pines for some of those lovely endogenous bulbifer-
ous plants that are growing beside yonder marsh, for
she feels sure that they must be some new species,
and heaves a regretful sigh as the train passes on.
Whereupon her husband turns around and looks
wildly down the car, as if seriously contemplating
4 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the immediate stopping of the trail), or some other
desperate maneuver whereby the bulbiferous endo-
gens may be procured. But, on second thought,
he settles down and delivers himself of a diatribe
against the vile mercenary spirit of railroad cor-
porations in general and of the Union Pacific in
particular. Enlisting the florid effusions of some
of his choice oratorical efforts, he warmly asserts
that corruption in high places should be closely
scrutinized ; that bribery and trickery among our
public officials should be ferreted out, and an
indignant public should excoriate the same with
withering scorn ; and that the surest way of staying
this frightful torrent of chicanery, and of heralding
in pure politics, was to grant universal and unre-
stricted suffrage to the much-abused and down-
trodden female sex. To all of which an approving
amen was smiled by the budding scientist whose
genius was thus being rudely blighted by the
grasping avarice of the Union Pacific.
It took us about seven days to cover the dis-
tance between the oceans. The journey was a
most enjoyable one. The greater part of our com-
pany will take the same steamer for Yokohama.
This will make it quite home-like. I have not
cumbered myself with very much luggage. A
trunk and a box of books tell the tale. They say
that Yokohama furnishes all articles needed by
Europeans and Americans. I hope you will ex-
cuse the brevity of this letter. Also, its abrupt
termination, for I must go down to Santa Clara
THE FAREWELL. 5
this afternoon to visit some cousins living there.
Keep me posted on all home news, and I will post
you on all news relating to Japan.
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt. .
LETTER II.
A VOYAGE ACROSS THE PACIFIC.
Yokohama, Japan, December 18, 1873.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
I HAVE been here about a month. I have not
yet secured a position : but my friend Adamson
says that patience is a great virtue, particularly
in Japan. He says that more than half the battle
is won by being here on the ground. I hope to
report progress in my next letter. My mornings
I spend in walking over the delightful hills
surrounding Yokohama. For two hours after
tiffin I am engaged in teaching a couple of
Japanese gentlemen. After that, I have some
time for reading. And then before dinner I take
another walk through the city or along the Bluffs.
I have already been over almost every path within
a radius of five miles of this place. Everything is
so novel that it seems as if I were in a new world.
Private teaching here is not very remunerative.
Japanese do not feel able to pay more than five
dollars per month for tuition ; and the majority
feel heavily taxed when they have to pay two dollars
per month. Unless a person can secure a contract
under the government, he will find school-teaching
A VOYAGE ACROSS THE PACIFIC. 7
a poor business. But all this is not answering
your questions about my voyage across the
Pacific.
Let us imagine ourselves on the wharves at San
Francisco. We pass up the gangway of the huge
paddle-wheel steamer chained to the pier. Its
accommodations are superb. Upon the upper
deck is a social hall where we can have music and
dancing. Upon the same deck is a fine broad
promenade. Here, the children, the terror of sea-
going folks, spend most of their time. These
steamers take about twenty-six days to reach Yo-
kohama in moderately fair weather. The pro-
pellers take about eighteen days. They are not,
however, so comfortable, and many of the ladies
prefer the extra time, with comfort.
Having arranged our stateroom, we lean over
the taffrail beside the main gangway, and watch
the passengers coming up from the pier. Here
comes the English party. They recognize us and
exchange nods, for in journeying we dispense with
formal introductions. Behind this party come
three or four Japanese gentlemen dressed in Euro-
pean style and armed with patent leather valises.
Then follows a Chinese Commissioner leading his
two boys. They are all dressed in their native
costume. And their well-greased pig-tails flaunt
gently in the breeze. They come stalking up the
gangway as consequentially as if they owned the
ship. The contrast between them and the Japa-
nese is characteristic of the two nations.
8 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
The tide of passengers and leave-taking friends
is now surging up and down the plank in a con-
tinuous stream. It is within a few minutes of high
noon, and we are preparing to start. Ah ! here
comes the admirer of bulbiferous endogens. And
beside her is the denouncer of corrupt railroad cor-
porations, our friend Mustaches. That feeble old
gentleman meekly following them is the father of
the gushing scientist. We came near being deprived
of their society across the Pacific. Time's up !
The gang-plank is drawn away. The hawsers are
cast loose, and the vessel swings from the wharf.
Round go the wheels, and the spray sprinkles the
crowd on the pier. The extending wake of boiling
waters now marks our course down the bay.
Have you ever seen your native cliffs sinking be-
neath the waves? And have you ever felt as you
gazed mournfully astern through the misty air
that your farewell might be final, and that you
might never see those blue mountains rising from
the sea? Then you can appreciate our feelings.
The passengers crowd the hurricane deck and
wave their handkerchiefs to the crowded shore.
Many eyes moisten as the gap widens and the re-
sponsive flutterings become obscured by the dis-
tance. Even the officers wear a resigned expres-
sion. But the saddest group of all is the little
party of missionaries just abaft the paddle-box.
They necessarily feel the situation far more keenly
than people who are going abroad for self-interest,
expecting to return in a few months, or two or
A VOYAGE ACROSS THE PACIFIC. 9
three years at most. Their outlook is gloomy.
For they are to be gone for ten years at least, un-
less death or disease steps in to shorten their
exile. Now, in the Sunday schools we used to get
the impression that missionaries were a species of
beings so divinely constituted that they were not
apt to be affected by ordinary human woes ; but
here we see simply a sad little company of devoted
people who arc greviously afflicted, like ordinary
mortals, with homesickness. And as they hurry
down into the cabin we grimly wonder how many
of the church members at home, who believe in
missionaries never leaving the foreign field, and in
their going to heaven by way of India and China,
and who are so loud in dictating about the econo-
mical disposal of missionaries, as if they were
pieces of church furniture, would thus ostracize
themselves from home, friends, and civilized
society.
But our voyage is begun. The peculiarity of a
sea-voyage across the Pacific is that you get almost
all nationalities represented. English, French,
Germans, Jews, Chinese, Japanese, and Americans
are apt to be well represented. All grades of so-
ciety, all creeds, and all professions are also apt to
be represented. The cosmopolitan character of
the passengers usually promotes good nature and
sociability. You, of course, know what a sea-
voyage is. There is much sameness in the general
run of events. Eating is our prime occupation.
Coffee and toast at seven ; breakfast at eight ; tif-
lO LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
fin at twelve ; a regular dinner at five ; and tea at
nine ; there you have it.
Our interludes we fill in with reading and gossip-
Sometimes the Japanese passengers are criticised.
You are duly informed how many cigars they
smoke per day; how many bottles of wine they
drink at dinner ; how often they pace up and
down the spar-deck indorsing the civilized method
of exercise ; how little Tanaka^ while pacing the
deck with the dignity of a tycoon, had his high
hat blown over the quarter-rail and came very near
going over himself while frantically hopping after
it ; and how sociable, genial, and chatty they are.
Then you will hear a long yarn about the mis-
sionaries. How the stewardess says the ship al-
ways meets a storm when they come aboard ; and
how foolish it is for people to spend thousands of
dollars in sending them abroad when there are so
many heathens at home.
Then you will hear about the English. How
they bet on every imaginable thing, — on the
weather, on the number of miles run per day, on
the prospects of rain, on the continuance of the
wind, and on the length of the voyage.
Then the Americans catch it. And our English
cousins furnish us with a series of dissolving views
upon society, politics, and morality in all that por-
tion of dangerous territory called by civilized na-
tions America, but which we designate the United
States.
They always advance the same arguments, and
A VOYAGE ACROSS THE PACIFIC. II
tenaciously cling to the same line of assertion.
They get most of their ideas from English news-
papers and journals, and never think for themselves
as to whether their ideas are accurate. I have had
several tilts with them and have now become so
familiar with their mode of attack that I begin to
wish they would start a new journal in England so
that we can have a little variety in our discourses.
After a short conversation you can tell by what
London newspaper an Englishman swears.
We have had several animated after-dinner dis-
cussions. As a matter of recreation, I have
dramatized these belligerent talks. I here insert
a copy of my humble efforts. It will serve as a
sample.
ACT I.
Scene I.
'(Captain's table. Dramatis /Vrj<7«
'. All the rooms
are extremely high and airy. They are separated
from each other by exquisitely ornamented shojees *
* The word shojec, like the word tatami, cannot be rendered prop-
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 63
(sliding doors made of paper) set in elegantly lac-
quered frames. Upon the panels you see beauti-
fully executed designs from nature, — mountain,
field, and flood being presented by the best native
skill. The floors are covered with the finest tatamis,
A few lovely screens and some superb pieces of
bronze and lacquerware will complete the furnish-
ing of the apartments, for you must bear in mind
that the Japanese are utterly deficient as regards
upholstery. The ceilings of the rooms are usually
finished off with square panels representing dragons
and fairies upon gilded backgrounds. In the cham-
bers of Nobunaga's palace in Owari the panels are
.said to have been originally inlaid with plates of
pure gold.
As was before hinted these palaces cover a vast
amount of ground. The visitor is led through suite
after suite until he becomes bewildered at the ap-
parently never ending maze of elaborate apart-
ments.
As a rule, the finest room is the audience cham-
ber. Here the combined skill of many artists con-
spire to overwhelm the mind of the stranger with
the wealth, the power, and the generosity of his
Highness. Royal tigers are crouching upon the
gilded panels. Here we see two of the ferocious
erly into English. It will therefore be frequently used in the fol-
lowing pages. It is a kind of sliding door set in grooves. They
form the walls and partitions of Japanese domiciles. Upon a fragile
sashing of wood, delicate tissue paper is pasted ; this is then set in
a light frame, frequently lacquered, adapted to grooves in the floor.
64 LETTERS FROM JAPAISr.
beasts engaged in fierce combat. There we have
the phoenix and the peacock perching upon gor-
geous sprays of a species of plant that never existed
outside of the artist's brain. While down at the
far end of the room is a scene from Chinese history
that occupies the entire side of the apartment.
Great ingenuity has been displayed in the endless
variety of the designs. No two are precisely
similar. Here we have the lotus plant growing in
an elaborate jar. There we see it blossoming beside
the sedges in the moat. There it unfolds its gor-
geous petals beside the mountain streams that flow
through the shaded grounds of that monastery.
And yet again wc catch its impassioned gleam beside
the lilies in the Imperial ponds. Very few of the
historic scenes relate to Japan. China is the classic
source of inspiration.
For elegance and beauty, the palaces of Kioto,
Owari, and Yeddo ranked among the highest. As
there is a similarity between the castles in Japan,
so the palaces furnish but little in the line of start-
ling variety.
Since the Imperial Revolution of 1 868-1 870, all
these provincial strongholds have been turned over
to the central government. All the former pro-
prietors have been sent to Tokio to be kept under
Imperial surveillance. Many of the castles have
been allowed to fall into decay. Some of the
choicest, however, are kept in a fair state of repair,
and are open to the inspection of tourists from
abroad. But the majority have been turned into
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 65
quarters for garrisons, and all the ancient parapher-
nalia and ornamentation have about disappeared.
Many of the bronzes, and most of the elegant lac-
quering, now adorn the homes of the wealthy in
Europe and America.
You will find long rows of roughly-made bed-
steads arranged up and down the spacious chambers.
Muskets are stacked in the audience hall. Knap-
sacks and heavy riding boots are strewn around
promiscuously to be kicked under an adjoining bed
by some passing foot. The shojccs and tatamis have
been removed, and but little remains to remind one
of the former condition of things, save the few rooms
appropriated by the officers.
And now I hear you inquiring about the parties
that lived within these walls. How did they spend
their time ? What was the social life of the in-
mates? How was administrative power wielded?
In short, give a glimpse of old feudal times in
Japan.
Let us begin, then, with my lord, the Daimio,
inasmuch as he was the theoretical sovereign unit.
In him were centered the executive, the legislative,
and the judicial power. These functions were then
delegated to favored retainers, who relieved their
lord of the drudgery usually connected with those
departments.
In discussing the Daimio, we will suppose him to
be a person of fair ability and energy. He has
under him some ten or twenty thousand samurai
(feudal retainers) scattered through the Daimiate.
66 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Of these some five thousand live in the immediate
vicinity of the castle, taking turns in doing garrison
duty and in guarding their liege lord.
From these again are selected the most promis-
ing as personal attendants. Under the old regime
it was the ambition of every samurai to be so
chosen. For if an obscure retainer could win the
notice and favor of his master by pleasing manners
and bearing, he could flatter himself with the pros-
pect of holding the most honored positions so long
as the favor lasted. In some cases, powerful fami-
lies would hold the princely favor for generations
to the exclusion of others, thus causing bitter jeal-
ousies, and, too frequently, cruel assassinations.
This favor was usually secured and retained by an
amount of obsequiousness quite repulsive to our
natures.
Now let us follow his lordship through a day's
work. After breakfast (composed of rice accom-
panied with delicate morsels of fish, rice-beer, and
choice bits of vegetables, served up and eaten on
the tatainis), a delegation of samurai will wait upon
his Grace with a few items of provincial business
which are presented for approval or discussion.
Perhaps it is a memorial from some farmers peti-
tioning for lower taxes as the rice crops have been a
failure. Or perhaps it is a minute description of
some foreign articles in an adjoining province. Or,
possibly, it may be an account of another intrusion
of one of those restless barbarian ships upon the
coast. Or, it may be the disorderly conduct of
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 67
some samurai, coupled with the suggestion that he
be confined to his house for a few days as punish-
ment.
After this, a well-informed gentleman comes in
to instruct his Lordship by edifying conversation
upon a variety of topics. The manners, literature,
and history of the Chinese will usually form the
main topic of conversation. The duration of this
private tutoring will entirely depend upon the tem-
perament and mental caliber of the prince.
In the afternoon, a stroll down to the shooting
range will be in order. When the long-bows and
match-locks have been sufficiently tested, some time
will be devoted to fencing with bamboo foils. After
which, a half hour or so of horseback riding up and
down the avenues will be in order.
About two or three times per month he goes
forth from the castle to hunt with his falcons in the
country. Occasionally he tackles larger game and
brings down a boar or a stag with arrow or spear.
Some of these excursions form famous themes for
artists. In some of the drawings, my lord is repre-
sented leaping his horse over a chasm and chasing
a monstrous boar that rivals his steed in dimen-
sions, while his speechless retainers stand gaping in
hopeless bewilderment on the further edge, quite
unable to follow the mad career of their valorous
master.
During the hot summer months when the exhala-
tions from the moat render the immediate vicinity
of the tenshiu unhealthy, he will journey off to his
68 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
mountain villa, where he can spend a month or two
in composing Chinese poetry in honor of the moon
or his favorite concubine. For you must bear in
mind that poetizing in this country is not a mon-
opoly, but a mere mechanical process that can be
learned by almost any one who desires to become
expert in grinding out the requisite metered verses.
Some of this princely rhythmic agony, by the way,
enjoys considerable reputation. The sentiment,
however, is never remarkably overwhelming in its
effects. If our prince be public spirited, he will
make an occasional journey through his Daimiate
to see that all is going well. But the great event
of the year will be his visit to Yeddo. The discus-
sion of ways and means will occupy several weeks,
and, as many months will elapse before his return,
arrangements must be made for guarding the castle
and keeping things in order.
Theoretically, the Daimios were supposed to ex-
change provinces annually in accordance with the
laws of lyeyaSj the feudal law-giver of Japan. And in
the early days of the ShogunatCy this regulation was
undoubtedly enforced. But the rule became prac-
tically a dead letter as regards the northern and
south-western provinces ; although the right to
carry out the statute was never relinquished by the
house of Tokugawa.
So long as a province sent in its regular tribute
of rice, and disturbed not the peace of the general
government by hatching conspiracies, it might
retain its prince for many generations, — provided
.1...,
> ' » , >
{Sativt PItotograph.')
• i.
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 69
he paid his regular visit to Yeddo to do homage to
the Great Lord of Nippon.
But I have been depicting to you an ideal Daimio.
Your average lord, it grieves me to say, differed
very much from this model. Instead of harkening
daily to the edifying conversation of some learned
samurai, he wasted his hours in frivolous sports
and childish chit-chat with his concubines. He
loved wine to excess, and was frequently as " boozy "
as typical members of nobility are wont to be. So
far from practicing his body with daily manly exer-
cise, he resorts to the ingenious expedient of hav-
ing two or three horse-boys wind his nags, and two
or three coolies might strain their backs over the
bows and arrows while he complacently watches
their gyrations. As to practicing fencing, he
merely desires half a dozen retainers to bang each
other's heads with the heavy foils until he has
thoroughly imbibed the intricacies of this highly
scientific art. As to listening to the long-winded
disquisitions of aldermanic Yakunins and official
samurai upon the administration of provincial
affairs, they might smoke their pipes over the he-
bachiSf ad libitum^ and adopt any measure they
might see fit, so long as they did not compromise
his pleasures and revenues, and falconry and hunt-
ing might go to the winds. And as to jumping
chasms after wild boars, — the — the — well, the
horse-boys can do that also.
About three or four times a season he will exert
himself sufficiently to visit some hot mineral spriogs
JO LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
in the mountains to soak out the licentious impuri-
ties of a past winter. Occasionally he will rouse
his languid curiosity enough to examine some su-
perb pieces of lacquer-ware or bronze, upon which
he has squandered half the revenues of his province,
perhaps. Should he wish to see some famous court-
dancers, wrestlers, or any other performances of a
curious nature, several days will be spent before the
preliminaries, the preparation of the grounds, and
the exhibition can be consummated. For it would
be the height of vulgarity for his Grace to visit a
house of public resort. He must inspect anything
odd and novel through endless formalities. In
short, he was a perfect slave to etiquette. And,
unless he was a person of more than average reso-
lution, he would inevitably sink into a state of utter
and hopeless imbecility, — a condition, in fact, that
was rather encouraged by the ambitious head men
of the clan who desired to administer affairs to suit
themselves without any interference from the prime
power. It was a kind of oligarchy. The Daimio
was a kind of social figure-head. He was to be
petted and humored. He was never to have the
placidity of his temper ruffled by any crossing ; he
was to be treated with the most deferential obse-
quiousness ; to symbolize limitless power, though
possessing little of the essence. In short, he was
to be kept in a state of perfect animal good nature,
and to have his ambition and energy dissipated by
abundance of license, so that his consent to all legal
proceedings might the more easily be obtained.
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 7 1
The truth is, that about Perry's time, political
affairs in Japan had become thoroughly run down.
The samurai were rapidly degenerating into a herd
of voluptuous imbeciles. Feudal customs had be-
come completely worn out. The country was well
prepared for a change. I have frequently been in-
formed by Japanese that the patriotic portion of
Japan had already become disgusted at the fright-
ful corruption of their country, and were solicitous
for speedy reformation. And it was this under-
current of liberalism that forced the conservative
element to open the country to foreign intercourse.
This accounts for the marvelous reaction against
all ancient political institutions that has so aston-
ished us Western people. For you must remember
that the Japanese still cling to most of their social
institutions; and they will continue to do so for
generations.
Now as to your next question, concerning ad-
ministrative regulations in old times, it will be
rather difficult to convey a very definite idea. The
first course served up in a French revolution is a
new constitution. But this country has never been
blessed with this modern invention, as it has been
characterized. The legacy of lyeyas, which in
many respects was a dead letter, consisted mostly
of directions for regulating the succession of the
Tokugawa house, and of a few general admonitions
for the management of public affairs. Theoreti-
cally, the Shogun (Tycoon, we call him), was the
prime minister of the invisible emperor (Mikado,
72 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
we call him), at Kioto, to whom he did homage for
perpetual lease of unlimited royal power. And he,
in turn, exacted homage from the Daimios for an-
nual lease of provincial power revocable at pleasure.
He stood as a sort of go-between betwixt the
phenix car and the Daimios. The emperor must
not be contaminated by vulgar bickerings with the
masses. That piece of drudgery must be performed
by his head servant, the Shogun. It was his duty
to keep peace within the realm in the name of his
master. He must govern the people. He must
furnish his Imperial Majesty with proper guards,
and appoint proper officers to see that the revenues
of the Province of Yamashiro were duly devoted to
keeping up the simplicity of the imperial court.
While the Shogun was thus supposed to be busy-
ing himself with the secular affairs of the realm at
Yeddo, the inmates of the Gosho in Kioto were
supposed to be wrapped in the sublimest indiffer-
ence to administrative affairs, being in a kind of
imperial Nirvana, if you please. They would, how-
ever, occasionally notice the petitions of their head
servant for some title or rank to be conferred on
some worthy subject. Such w^as the theory.
Practically, however, the emperor was kept under
a polite but most unrelenting surveillance. A bare
pittance wherewith to keep up a skeleton court
within a few acres of enclosed ground was doled
forth to him at tardy intervals by the officers. He
was respectfully but strictly guarded by Aidzu, the
most zealous Tokugawa clan. And the Shogun
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 73
bothered himself so little about his Imperial Ma-
jesty that he spent all his time in Yeddo, three
hundred and fifteen miles to the north-east, and
they are reported to have paid their homage per-
sonally to the emperor only about once a century.
So closely was the emperor confined that his
person was never seen by any one outside of his
family. In fact, the position was so void of prerog-
atives, and possessed so few attractions, that it
became by no means a rare custom for an emperor
to resign his office, and, investing his infant son
with the empty titles, retire to one of the superb
monasteries in the mountains surrounding Kioto,
where he could at least see something of the world.
Thus it was that the Tokugawas, giving but nom-
inal deference to the fountain of honors, grasped
the administrative power, and bullied their subor-
dinates to their hearts* content. Like all central-
ized power, however, their authority over the
Daimiates gradually became dissipated. Satsuma,
Chosiu, and Tosa, were permitted to do pretty
nearly what they chose. And soon each prince, so
long as he paid his regular homage and tribute,
held almost unlimited sway over his Daimiate.
Each one had his palace in Yeddo in charge of
some near relative.
Passing now to the respective provinces we find
that the administrative power was almost entirely
in the hands of the samurai class. These are the
double-sword ed gentlemen that we see so often
represented in Japanese pictures. They were, in
74 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
theory, bound body and soul to the interests of
their lord. To disobey him was the highest crime.
They were to gird him round with a living wall,
standing betwixt him and every danger. In return
for these services he was to distribute among them
annual pensions of so many bushels of rice apiece.
They never worked at manual occupations. Their
only business was to attend on the prince. They
were the aristocrats of the realm. The swords they
carried were typical of their genteel and chivalrous
breeding. The sons of samurai^ during their in-
fancy, would carry wooden ones. When fourteen
years old, at which age they reached their majority,
they would receive a pair of genuine ones. This
day was made one of festivity, and all the family
friends sent in their congratulations. The young
man was now admitted to the counsels of his elders,
and was treated with all becoming deference. The
next thing was to try the temper of the blades.
And until this was accomplished the youth was
nearly wild. The first hack would usually find its
way into some luckless dog roaming about the yard.
The bodies of criminals also furnished much prac-
tice. The executioners also tested the edges by
taking off heads. Should dogs and criminals be
scarce, however, a night's loafing in the dark streets
generally furnished a victim. When a samurai
appeared on the street he must always wear his
swords. It would have been a serious breach of
etiquette not to have done so. The samurai were
haughty and brave. They cultivated the most
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 75
pleasing politeness. They were very sensitive, and
very easy to take offense. They would instantly
draw their swords upon any one insulting them.
But toward the mercantile people and the peasan-
try they were very overbearing. A peasant was
once slain on the spot for splashing some mud upon
a samurai. If a peasant laughed at a samurai he
would be cut down instantly. The lower classes
always passed these gentlemen with averted faces
and downcast eyes. If one samurai was rude to
another one a duel followed. Therefore, when two
samurai met they tried to outdo each other in
politeness, so as to avoid giving the least cause for
offense. I have seen four of these gentlemen take
nearly five minutes to get out of a door. Each one
wanted the other one to step out first. The exces-
sive politeness that wc notice in the Japanese is the
product of feudal times. A typical samurai was
courteous toward his friends, haughty toward for-
eigners, vindictive and merciless toward his foes,
hasty and furious in his temper, recklessly brave in
combat ; sly, treacherous, and cunning in politics ;
easy, lazy, and licentious in private life, and a
prodigal boon companion, socially considered. He
had no well-grounded principles. He was fickle
and unreliable. A samurai must always avenge in-
sult with blood. If he could not assassinate his
enemy he would often slay himself by the famous
stomach -cut, or hara-kiri, A strong-minded
Daimio would have found himself at the head of a
dangerous and serviceable body of men, and would
76 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
have been a most arbitrary dictator. But, as was
before intimated, the head families of the clan
usually managed to absorb all favor and power, and
the Daimio became a myth, while the pampered
savmrai merged into a parasitical condition of will-
fulness and indolence, having frequent duels, and
rendering the immediate vicinity of the castle de-
cidedly dangerous after nightfall. Many a morning
has dawned upon the mangled remains of some be-
lated peasant, whose body had served admirably for
testing the temper of some lawless blades. Redress
in such cases was almost impossible.
It thus became a matter of vital importance for
the head families to keep possession of the person
of the prince, so as to give legality to all proceed-
ings. As the Shogun guarded the emperor, so
these savmrai guarded the Daimio. And the mass-
ive Tenshiuswerc quite as much for preserving this
legal seal from sudden factions of rivals as from the
unexpected inroads of the enemy.
The legislative and judicial departments, as we
understand the terms, can not be said to have ex-
isted in the Japanese feudal system. There was
no legislative body at all. The law of the land was
the will of the prince modified by the influence of
his chief retainers. Like most semi-civilized so-
cieties, the common law was very simple ; and was
not enshrined in elaborate treatises and reports, like
our voluminous system, that requires years of per-
sistent application to fully grasp. The principles
of the feudal code were decidedly primitive. In
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. J J
the first place, whatever conflicted with the prince's
will must be wrong, and was not to be tolerated.
In the second place, there must not be the slightest
manifestation of disobedience from subordinates,
for this would be the grossest of misdemeanors.
In the third place, existing customs, when not con-
flicting with the above, were to be duly respected
and adopted as the common standard of adjudica-
tion. Finally, the opinion of the presiding Yaku-
nin, or magistrate, must be decisive in all cases left
to judicial discretion. And from his decision an
appeal was practically impossible.
In this primitive condition of society, where legal
complexity could hardly be said to exist, — and
where, if it did, it could be easily severed by the
will of a single individual, — you can readily perceive
that it required no very great amount of accumu-
lated lore to fit a man for passing judgment. Al-
most any young samurai could mete out what little
justice there was to be doled forth to the harmless,
simple people of the provincial towns and villages.
A fair amount of self-confidence — (and these gen-
tlemen were rarely found wanting in that article) —
and a knowledge of local customs, quite fitted any
young blade for the position of Yakunin.
The term " Yakunin " conveys but a faint im-
pression to the Saxon mind. But to the native
intellect it is the embodiment of legal majesty. He
everywhere stands forth as the executor of the
royal will, the inexorable administrator of the un-
written law. The mountain boor of Mino, or the
78 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
mud-bespattered peasant of Echigo, may have but
hazy notions of the invisible power within the dis-
tant imperial moats of Yamashiro, but he finds a
tangible something about the ubiquitous Yakunin
that is impossible to be ignored. The presence of
one of these magistrates is indispensable in all pub-
lic actions. It is he that sees that the environ-
ments of the castle are properly cared for. He
keeps the avenues, roads, and bridges, in repair —
impressing peasants, if necessary, for the work.
He regulates tariffs upon the highways, furnishing
horses and coolies at standard prices. He collects
the revenues. He punishes offenders. He guards
the prisons. He keeps up a correspondence with
the friendly provinces, and takes endless pains to
make hostile ones as uncomfortable as possible.
He receives envoys and presents them to the prince
with due formality. He escorts. He spies out
traitors. He sponges with consummate grace, and
eats his master's rice with gratitude exquisite to
behold. By my troth ! it will be difficult to find
anything of a public nature of which a Yakunin is
not, in some way, a prime ingredient. Is there an
obscure mountain village that needs — or rather,
does not need — a magistrate ? Zounds ! he again
turns up quite equal to the emergency. Does my
lord desire to make an excursion to some hot
springs? It is the Yakunin that arranges all pre-
liminaries. He goes on ahead to order the people
to remain in their houses when the princely fiori-
mon comes down the street. He sees that proper
A GLIMPSE OF OLD FEUDAL TIMES IN JAPAN. 79
deference is shown by the coarse-minded masses.
He secures all the best rooms in the hotels, bund-
ling out all the occupants thereof. Is there a civil
commotion in the streets ? Behold ! the indefati-
gable, double-sworded exponent of the royal will
comes swaggering along, significantly grasping his
hilt, and orders a dispersion of the crowd with a
wave of his fan.
If you desire to see the atomic beauties of this
apparently indispensable office, go to a little ham-
let of two families, near Tsuruga, in Echizen. It is
needless to say that the sire of one of these per-
forms the duties of a Yakunin, diligently attending
to the welfare of the community and seeing that
the public receive no hurt.
But a truce to this. The night is well spent, and
our hand wearies. We have taken our glimpse of
a state of society that has existed a thousand
years. Imbecile figure-heads now no longer are
made to spurn the advances of outside '* barbari-
ans." Semi-barbaric cavalcades of samurai no
longer follow their princes in stately procession
along the somber avenues that wind through the
empire. The horde of parasites that formerly
flocked about the palace has been turned adrift,
while my noble lord has been summoned to Tokio,
where he may be more directly under the imperial
eye. His Daimiate has been surrendered to the im-
perial government ; and he is allowed, as a recom-
pense, one-tenth of the revenues of his former prov-
ince.
8o LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
The speeding years are dismantling the moated
turrets. The water lilies bloom upon the stagnant
ponds. Where once the lotus flowers brooded on
the murky waters of the moats, the bulrushes and
the reeds now afford shelter for the sedgebird*s
nest. The autumnal leaves have accumulated upon
the grassy lawns. The dragons and the bronze
fishes keep solitary vigils over the crumbling ram-
parts. For the lord of the estate has gone forth ;
the turbulent retainers have dispersed, and the som-
ber pines mournfully communing with the winter
gales, regret the pageantry of former years.
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
OUR POSTAL SERVICE.
LETTER VI.
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR.
HiROSAKi, September lo, 1874.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
In your last letter you asked many questions
about my life here in the interior ; how I spent my
time ; what kind of a house I am living in ; what
sort of school-buildings we have ; and what class
of scholars are under me.
Let me begin with a description of my house.
It is a well-built, double-storied, Japanese dwelling,
that was formerly used by one of the relations of
the Daimio. The exterior is not very prepossess-
ing; for your true Jap, however dainty he may
be about the interior arrangements of his man-
sion, appears to have rather indifferent ideas about
external show. You can never judge of the afflu-
ence of a family by outside finish. One great
beauty about a native house is that you need hardly
any furniture. The picturesquely papered walls
and shojees, together with the neatly polished ceil-
ings, make the general appearance so pretty that
much furniture would only mar the effect. The
house is splendid in summer time. But during
6
82 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
these severe northern winters it is very difficult to
keep warm. I, of course, have tables and chairs.
My yard is also thoroughly Japanese. It is sur-
rounded by a closely woven reed fence and is quite
secluded. I frequently invite my visitors out here.
My left-hand neighbor is a samurai turned photo-
grapher. He learned his profession in Yokohama,
and is able to turn out a very fair picture. My
right-hand neighbor is a merchant who has bought
out the titles and estates of an impoverished
samurai.
The school-building is some three hundred feet
back of my house. It was formerly used by the
retainers of the Daimio. In reality it is a long
shambling line of barracks ; somewhat better, how-
ever, than the usual run of such structures. It cost
about twelve hundred dollars; cheap enough from
our stand-point, but rather expensive from a native's,
the cost of whose humble domicile does not often
exceed four hundred. The large school-room is
furnished with benches, tables, maps, globes, and
black-boards. A large stove stands guard at my
end of the room. The floor is bare but well
polished. Light is admitted through a series of
glass windows arranged along the side of the room.
Their transparency furnishes an inexhaustible fund
of astonishment to the country folks. The adjoin-
ing room contains a small library and a few mathe-
matical instruments. Beyond this room is the
dining-room, which you will find to be well satu-
rated with the odor of salt radish, rice, and fish.
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 83
Beyond this again, extends a long series of rooms
for the boarding scholars. Then come the offices
of the directors.
On the whole, after seeing the miserable villages
that line the road from Awomori, you will be posi-
tively surprised at the really academic appearance of
the institution. From a native stand-point, these
are exceedingly liberal arrangements. The accom-
modations are the best in the city. The situation
is the most aristocratic, being upon the edge of the
outer moat, and the furniture seems quite elabo-
rate to a native. The school is supported by the
ex-Daimio. You cannot help admiring the endeav-
ors of this people to obtain learning. The scholars
number about eighty. They are all the sons of
samurai : common folks do not yet frequent the
school. When you get acquainted with the boys,
you find them a sharp set of youths. The first time
I entered the school-room they all seemed alike,^
and I was much puzzled to know how to dis-
tinguish them. I found them all very polite and
very attentive to their duties. Their ages averaged
sixteen. Their style of learning differs somewhat
from ours. They adopt the Chinese style of com-
mitting everything to memory. A boy will ac-
curately repeat a whole page, and yet have but
little idea of its meaning. I have great trouble in
breaking them of this habit. In studying they
raise a tremendous row. Three or four will get
into the school-room, and rock back and forth upon
the benches yelling in unison the next day's history
84 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
lesson. They shout forth sentence by sentence
until it is learned. Take such a sentence as
*' Caesar, having vanquished Pompey, returned tri-
umphantly to Rome." They first repeat Caesar
half-a-dozen times ; then they bawl forth the par-
ticipial phrase at least a dozen times; and, finally,
yell forth the concluding clause with such deafen-
ing gusto that you might well imagine the immor-
tal Caesar and a legion of hoodlums at his heels
were triumphantly announcing the fact that the
vanquished Pompey had gone below, where fathers-
in-law cease troubling.
The foreign teacher in Japan holds rather an
anomalous position. He is at first disposed to con-
sider himself merely a pedagogue plying his humble
avocation for exceedingly lucky wages. But he
soon finds that he holds a highly respectable posi-
tion. His house is generally the best in the city,
and occupies a site where only the relatives of the
Daimio were formerly permitted to live, and he
finds himself decidedly the leader of fashion. All
the scholars pattern after him as closely as possible,
and receive no small amount of social distinction
from being under the tuition of a foreigner. The
head men of the city will be proud to visit and re-
ceive visits from him. Should he be under govern-
ment employ at Tokio he is at liberty to call on
the emperor on New Year's Day. The emperor
visits the schools frequently. In the early days,
before he had begun to feel his importance, he
would listen to examinations, present prizes, and
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 85
submit to long-winded addresses from the masters
and directors with commendable patience. And on
one occasion, in Kioto, he even condescended to
partake of refreshments offered by one of the
teachers.
Whenever I go out for a walk the directors send
an escort with me. They seem to fear my coming
to grief at the hands of some fanatical satnurai.
When I first came here, every time I went out for
a walk about thirty of the scholars would turn out
with me. They came ostensibly for the exercise,
but I think they were possessed with a desire to
cut a swell in their native streets. And so the
whole crowd would come streaming after me in a
long procession, bringing the whole town out by
the din of their clogs. To shake them off appeared
impossible. I was finally inspired with the idea of
lengthening my strides to a regular training gait.
All manfully endeavored to keep up. Away we
stalked down the main street, across the suburbs,
through the fields, and down the long avenue that
stretched toward the mountains. Three or four of
the stoutest managed to keep up, but we could
look back over two miles of straggling squads of
demoralized small boys. The stratagem worked
like a charm. Thereafter my escort consisted of
three stout pedestrians. One day my escort being
tardy, I slipped out alone. Upon my return I
found the whole board of directors convulsed with
consternation. They had sent the whole school in
all directions to hunt me up. One squad didn't
86 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
get back until near ten o'clock, having, as they, rep-
resented, gone clown the extreme length of my
most extensive walk ; doubtless, however, tarrying
by the wayside booths to brush dull care away
with a little sak^ and fish. My return seemed to
afford infinite relief. One eagerly inquired whether
I had received any injury ; another, whether any-
one had insulted me ; and yet another, whether I
wasn't afraid of the dogs. They said they were
afraid of my being cut down by some of the discon-
tented old-style samurai who were bitter against
foreigners, believing them to have been instru-
mental in the abolition of feudalism. My escort
thereafter was always on time.
The avenue just spoken of leads to the east
until it strikes the grand avenue that leads over
mountain, stream, and plain, until it reaches Tokio
and ends in Nihon-Bashi. Along this noble high-
way swept the trains of the Daimios as they passed
down to do homage to the dread power of the
Tokugawas at Yeddo. Hither flocked his retainers
and subjects to bid god-speed to him on his tedious
journey ; bowing themselves to the ground as his
stately 7torimon (sort of palankeen), borne on the
shoulders of attendants, passed between the sway-
ing multitudes. Down where the avenue merges
into the winding mountain road among the foot-
hills formerly stood the summer villa of his Excel-
lency. Here his relations and retainers, who were
not going to accompany him, took their leave,
sipped the farewell cup, and turned their steps back
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 87
to their quiet city and solemn groves, regretting,
perchance, that they were not to visit the wonders
of the distant metropolis.
A melancholy recollection will always linger
around these stately highways. They are not so
well kept as of yore. The small pines are fre-
quently cut down of a dark night by fuel-seekers,
who dislike to trudge off to the mountains for their
fagots, and who would have atoned for their in-
dolence with their heads in former days, for the
Daimios took much pride in their roads.
During the summer afternoons this place forms
a popular resort for the citizens of Hirosaki. You
frequently come across large picnic ptirties holding
high carnival beneath some spreading tree, or upon
some swelling knoll where no passing breeze is lost.
As we pass along, some jolly customer, brimful of
saki and fish, will rise up from the feast and per-
form the weird fan-dance, to the delight of his up-
roarious companions, who applaud and laugh at his
tipsy flings. Sometimes one of the party will en-
deavor to absorb the attention of the company by
singing a song or telling a story, wherein his fath-
omless shrewdness figures conspicuously. These
convivial groups frequently remain long after the
moon has risen, and in the still hours of the
evening you can hear parties returning from some
rollicking cruise, hiccough forth barbaric odes that
make you dream of Chinese horns and Moorish
conches for the remainder of the night. For you
must bear in mind that there is nothing like Japan-
88 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
ese singing, either on the earth, or in the heavens
above, or in the waters beneath. The operator
first makes a prolonged hissing sound by drawing
his breath between his lips. He then closes his
eyes so tight that you fancy he never intends open-
ing them again upon this cruel world. Then a
series of groans and grunts begin to wallow up from
the depths of his abdominal recesses, finally ex-
ploding from his mouth in a succession of fiendish
hoots and yells. In the meantime his contorted
features loosen and shake themselves out into
expressions of the most approving and ineffable
serenity ; while he occasionally claps his hands as
if forcibly appropriating that applause which he
certainly ought never otherwise to obtain.
I shall never forget the first time I heard one of
these execrable productions of the infernal muse.
It was on the trip from Hakodate to Awomori.
As the steamer came to anchor, I went below to
get my valise. While picking it up, I thought
some one was speaking. Turning around, I saw a
raw-boned fisherman in the opening stages of this
interesting frenzy, and supposed from his agonized
countenance that he was suffering from an attack
of seasickness. But he wasn't. He exploded into
one of his most impassioned strains, making my ears
fairly tingle.
Flute playing is also a popular source of recrea-
tion, and appears to instill the very essence of amia-
bility into the savage breasts of this neighborhood.
Four patrons of this divine art, in the immediate
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 89
vicinity of my house, possess as many specimens of
these sweet little sticks. The melody is a mourn-
ful strain of unvarying monotony that they appear
to be never tired of playing. On moonlight nights
they and I are particularly wakeful. Singing and flute
playing, with desultory strumming on fiddles, com-
pletely exhaust the musical genius of this people.
The opera, the oratorio, the concert, are utterly
unknown. There is no requesting Miss Tomita or
Miss Tanaka to afford you the exquisite pleasure
of seeing her down to hear Parepa or Rubenstein ;
no inspection of dashing actresses through binocular
magnifiers; no formidable array of claw-hammer
parquets ; no small boy always dodging between
you and the prima donna ; no steaming and puffing
while trying to get out ; and no hagglings with
hackmen after you are out. Blissful primeval sim-
plicity ! In America the evenings form the favored
time for brilliant gatherings, but here they are a
perfect blank. With the setting sun, the doors are
slid to, and drowsiness or gossiping relaxations end
the day.
Between teaching, and walking, and reading my
home mail, time is well spent. Should ennui, how-
ever, steal upon mc unawares, I sally forth into my
kitchen to refresh my boy's rather hazy ideas of
bread-making with a few rather indefinite views of
my own, which appear to leave him more hopelessly
perplexed than ever. A boy is an indispensable
appendage of the Oriental sojourner. It is the boy
that cooks, washes the dishes, and waits on the
90 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
table. He makes your bed, and fills your lamps,
and cleans your room. He looks after your inter-
ests generally. He will not allow any one to cheat
you, but always takes a percentage of all money
passing through his hands, the rate of which will be
proportioned to the rascality of his nature and the
carelessness of his master.
But the specimen that I possess will never be able
to add much to his income, for the simple reason
that he lacks the cleverness for cheating, and barely
possesses the requisite amount of intelligence for
chewing rice. It was only after much difficulty
that his services could be procured, for the people
here are rather timid about foreigners. He set his
wages at five dollars per month ; and I made no ob-
jection. From this income, he supports a wife, and
is able to sport a pair of woolen drawers, to the no
small envy of his former associates who are com-
pelled to ply their daily avocations minus that
delectable article of apparel.
My boy has very vague ideas about foreign styles
of cooking. To begin, he thinks it useless to wash
his hands before kneading up the dough. I am in-
flexibly of the contrary opinion. As to ever wash-
ing out the dish-wiper, why, that's pure fogyism !
He considers it an absurd piece of foreign fastid-
iousness to beat up the whites of the eggs before
mixing with the sugar and flour. My own views
as to the necessity of this proceeding not being very
clear, I am not prepared to convict him on this
point. Therefore I refer the matter for your deci-
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 9 1
sion ; for I am by no means disposed to give slavish
deference to the recipe.
He roasts a fowl quite fairly, but he hasn't the
least idea as to how stuffing is made. Neither have
I. His omelets are passable, that is to say, would
not be taken for soap. It is on sponge cake, how-
ever, that he prides himself. But it is fair to paren-
thetically remark that his master is not particularly
elated with his proficiency in this branch of cuisine
accomplishment. Nevertheless I must modestly
intimate that this cake is quite palatable when I
chance to assist in its concoction. Otherwise, he
appears to exert some fell influence over its proper
development. He takes a melancholy satisfaction
in having the top sag down like the crater of a vol-
cano. Now I would not be fastidious about the
shape, provided this depression did not reduce the
interior to the flavor and consistency of leather. I
am fully convinced that he slaps all the ingredients
together into a dish and then shoves it into an oven.
The first loaf of bread seemed to give his honest
heart genuine satisfaction as he came grinning into
my study with it in his hands. I told him to cut
me a slice. His knife slipped hopelessly off the
crust. He finally got it apart by driving the meat
knife perpendicularly through the center and bear-
ing heavily against the handle, making some artless
remarks meanwhile about its being somewhat kattai
(tough). The inside was as yellow as a carrot. I
jntimated that the color wasn't exactly orthodox ;
and that adamantine inflexibility was not considered
92 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
a requisite of the staff of life. I condescended,
however, to initiate his unenlightened mind into
the mysteries of this science by making three or
four loaves myself, and was able, with comparative
ease, to turn out some very fair specimens of brick-
bats. We mutually agreed to give it up as a bad
job, and I fell back upon the crackers in my store-
box.
His ideas of coffee-making were also based upon
erroneous conceptions of the art. His first efforts
resulted in a complicated emulsion that failed to
pass muster, or my throat. I told him to put an
Ggg into it next time, for that would settle the
grounds. The following morning a long, sooty jet
of liquid streamed from the nozzle into my cup.
He looked perplexed, and began scratching his
head, muttering something about yukinai (not
right). The cover was lifted, and lo! the unbroken
ii^'gy boiled to a flint! Considerable explanation
convinced him of the propriety of breaking the ^^^
into the grounds before pouring on the hot water.
I have occasion to feel devoutly thankful that I
am not dependent on him for my living. If I allow
him to discontinue his coffee-making for three days
he invariably forgets the recipe, and brings in on
the fourth a mixture much resembling tar, both as
to flavor and consistency. If I permit him to dis-
continue cake-making for a week he produces a batch
of cookies that would infallibly bring tears to the
eyes of a frisky crocodile. And as to his griddle-
cakes ! Pitiful Zeus ! They are so elastic that the
A FE W IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 93
Supreme Court and Amphictyonic Council com-
bined could sit thereon without leaving the least
impression.
About once a month he is smitten with an unac-
countable ambition to tickle his indulgent master's
palate with some new dish. It is impossible to
imagine from what source these combinations of
culinary genius take their rise. He usually spends
about two hours over these inspired stews. I am
invariably forewarned of their debut by about an
hour of deafening hissing and sizzling in the region
of the kitchen, combined with a powerful odor,
compared with which garlic and boiled cabbage
would be ethereal and delicate perfumes. He then
slides back the shojee, and, with a face wriggling
with ecstatic subjective approval, hopes the danna-
san (master) will condescend to try a trifling variety
in cooking that his unworthy servant has had the
presumption to innovate. The danna-san tries to
smile a melancholy approval. But when the in-
spired prodigy has gone out, the heartless danna-
san throws half of the mess into the yard to be eaten
by the crows, leaving the remainder to be eaten by
the precious inventor. The crows eye the mixture
with considerable suspicion before bolting it. And
for the next two or three hours I fancy myself able
to detect a certain listlessness in their deportment,
as if they were suffering from indigestion, — if it be
possible to conceive of anything disagreeing with a
crow.
I would not part with this boy for a number of
94 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
reasons. In the first place, it would be impossible
to find another one in the province to take his
place. Secondly, although he knows nearly as
much about cooking as I do, yet he knows more
than the whole province combined. And it would
take at least a year to instill his concentrated knowl-
edge of the subject into a new customer. Finally,
I might go wild with ennui had I not his diversions
to amuse me. I gain a splendid idea of the utter
ignorance of this people concerning our civilized
notions of living ; and also a practical knowledge of
their charming primitive simplicity as regards meth-
ods of reinvigorating the inner man. His meals
are very simple. He merely throws a couple of
handfuls of rice into some water, and allows it to
boil until cooked. He then falls to, and chokes it
down with a couple of sticks, ever and anon nibbling
a piece of salt-radish. In eating his mouth works
like an ungreased pump, making noise enough to be
heard in my study. And yet his system is un-
doubtedly more complicated than Adam's. The
revered progenitor of our unfortunate race doubt-
less never took the trouble to boil his vegetables.
And he probably hadn't the remotest conception of
the chop-sticks used by this portion of his fallen
posterity, finding his fingers quite handy for stuff-
ing down raw chops, and easily cleaned by sucking
and rubbing through his hair. And as to washing
his hands before indulging in culinary freaks, he
would probably have shaken hands with his de-
graded descendant. And as for beating up eggs
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 95
instead of instantly sucking the ends, — ah ! it is too
evident we have fallen from the primitive style of
preparing chow-chow.
But, in addition to my boy, I find my spare time
well taken up in defeating the machinations of my
neighbors* cat and dog. The former animal, in
particular, I view with hostile emotions. One day
my boy and I, after uniting our combined skill and
intelligence, were able to produce a dish somewhat
resembling chicken pot-pie. 'Tis true the resem-
blance was not remarkably striking ; still we flattered
ourselves that we had done a pretty good thing,
although the pastry did look like distress. While
anticipating a second delicious meal off this dish
my combination of chief butler and baker suddenly
announced that a certain bob-tail cat had entered
the cupboard in some mysterious manner, and had
feloniously absconded with the remnants. My first
proposition was to shoot the cat ; and, with the in-
tent of carrying out my deadly designs, I began
unpacking the accumulation of dust and rust from
the chambers of my revolver. But when the direc-
tors heard that I was lying in wait with deliberate
intent to annihilate the vile transgressor, they were
greviously agitated and begged me to desist, inas-
much as it might frighten the people, and as it was
against the local laws. The firing of a shot would
probably form an epoch in the history of the neigh-
borhood. The immediate community would take
some weeks to finish comparing notes as to the
volume and quality of the report, and the inimical
96 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
character of the agent. Taking heed of their ad-
monitions, I thereupon inserted some acetate of
lead and white vitriol into sundry pieces of meat,
and, with savage exultation, saw the animal walk
off with them. But to my infinite disgust, the
brute called around next day for more. But he
quit coming after that, and the curtain falls upon
his further history.
The dog lives two doors off. From my first ap-
pearance he took a violent antipathy to my person,
and I have never been to much trouble to dissi-
pate that prejudice. Should he happen to be
outside when I appear on the road he instantly
springs into position behind the fence, and com-
mences a furious attack by barking up and down
behind, occasionally venturing to seize it between
his teeth, and shake it violently ; creating the im-
pression, as we poor mortals are sometimes wont to
do, that but for this impediment wonderful things
might be accomplished. On one occasion he unin-
tentionally threw himself against a weak place, and
came tumbling through into the road. It was
interesting to notice the rapidity with which he
resumed his former position.
Another idiosyncrasy of his is to gnaw holes
through my reed fence and tear up the flowers,
and root around generally. My boy then goes out
and claps his hands at him and says '' Shoo f
C hicks haw f ^"^ (Begone! Beast!) Whereupon the
dog wags his tail and continues operations in the
most jocular frame of mind imaginable, until he
A FEW IDEAS ABOUT LIFE IN THE INTERIOR. 97
sees the ominous shadow of a top-boot sailing
through the air, when he suspends operations long
enough to carry it off. His partiality to my yard
increases in direct proportion to my murderous as-
saults upon his person. He spends as much of his
time here as he can. On one occasion he came
near creating a complicated legal discussion by bit-
ing another man's pig that had meandered near my
veranda. He sometimes invites in two or three of
his chums to help him in his horticultural pursuits.
He also comes here to fight out his duels. The
furious combatants paw up the soft loam, and
leave the yard like the field of Waterloo.
All dogs up here have a wolfish propensity for
howling at night. They have a great variety of
tones, and rising and falling inflections. This dog
appears to be a kind of chorister. His companions
seem to regard his voice as something uncommonly
fine. Now this canine nightingale invariably trains
his band just beside my window at midnight, ap-
parently considering night air specially suited for
this purpose. His enthusiastic efiforts usually rouse
ambition in the emulous breasts of two or three
other band-masters in the vicinity ; and they rout
out their classes and start up opposition. These
songsters then exchange challenges, and have a
grand fight, and in the morning I wake to find
my ink jug and fourteen tin cans lying around the
yard, while the boy's clogs have been driven through
the fence into the side of my neighbor's house.
** But he still lives. Aye, lives, and confronts me
7
98 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
daily " with a knowing wink whenever I appear
outside. After all, his machinations lack the
malicious audacity of the cat. I permit him to
exist. Betwixt him and my unhung chief baker, I
shall be able to worry out my contract here. I
shall not renew it. The loneliness is too sepulchral.
Thanks to Fred, I have a good offer at Tokio that
I shall accept. The monotony of life in the interior
is extremely wearing. Up at seven, breakfast at
eight, school from nine to three, allowing an hour
for dinner, and reading and walking to finish the
day. There you have it in a nut-shell. To pursue
the same routine, to sit down to meals alone, to
have no healthy excitement for the mind for
months, will be a strong test for the most elastic
minds. In the first six months you finish all your
investigations. The novelty gives you mental tone.
But after that, you come to your rope's end, and
it will be well for your soul if you possess sufficient
moral ambition and elevation of spirit to avoid the
foul example of the majority of those living inland,
who, when they depart, leave an unfortunate prog-
eny to drag out a degraded existence.
I hope you will not feel shocked at my allusions
to this subject in my letters, for it is the chief
characteristic of foreign life in Japan. I shall al-
ways handle the subject without ceremony or
mercy. Would that I could blot out this hateful
stain upon our civilization ! Write soon.
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
MAVV.IIAKA ; 1 VI-KAI. ^ fond of ram-
bling over the country. On one occasion he hap-
pened to stray beyond treaty limits. Not in the
least disturbed at this occurrence he took up his
quarters in a hotel, and ordered a bath. The land-
lord asked him to show his passport. Of course,
he had none. He said, however, as the exigencies
of the case did not seem to be imperative, he would
spend the night in- the hotel, and return to
treaty limits in the morning. This satisfied the
landlord. Our friend then went down to the bath.
But he was much surprised to find it occupied by a
strapping samurai. Our friend then told him in
language more forcible than elegant to *' piggy "
out of that. The man replied that he was quite
willing to remain where he was, as he felt quite equal
* lie remained nearly two years, and then left of his own accord.
A FEW REMINISCENCES.
123
to the position, and, moreover, had not yet finished
his ablutions. The gestures and tone of our irasci-
ble friend now became so offensive that the recipi-
ent thereof bounced out of the steaming tub, and
rushed forward with the avowed intent of chastising
the intruder. But about three feet off he was met
by a left-hander under the chin, which caused him
to step back through the shojees into the next
room with a rapidity of motion that could hardly
be characterized as graceful — an abrupt proceeding
that terrified in no inconsiderable manner two old
women who chanced to be there watching the prog-
ress of the misunderstanding through the crevices
of said shojees. As the victim showed no disposi-
tion to come after his soap and clothing our friend
pitched them out after him ; for the stage at which
he had arrived in the arrangement of his toilet when
interrupted could hardly have been designated as
presentable to the condoling crowd of sympathiz-
ing acquaintances gathering around him outside.
Our friend then occupied the field of combat. He
barricaded the doors, and spread himself out in the
domain so lately occupied, and so hastily abdicated
by the unhappy predecessor. After bathing to his
heart's content, as he was going up to his room he
saw quite a crowd in the yard listening to the ex-
planation of the man who hadn't time to finish his
bath, and who appeared to be illustrating his points
with considerable warmth. Soon after the landlord
came upstairs in considerable trepidation, and said
that the samurai (who, by the way, was a Yakunin
124 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
from the next village) had found out that the for-
eigner had no passport, and that he was going to
have him carried back to treaty limits that same
night. Our friend said that he would see about
that. He ordered up two hebachis (braziers), with
pots of boiling water.
In a few minutes he heard steps on the stairs.
Presently about a score of holes were punched
through the shojees and as many sparkling eyes
looked through. A through reconnoisance, how-
ever, of the premises seemed to convince the out-
siders that a six-footer, stripped down to a pair of
drawers and a pair of invulnerable hob-nailed dry-
docks, and armed with a ladle and two pots of
scalding water, was not the most eligible bellig-
erent that the occasion called for. So they retired
for further discussion on the ways and means of
capturing the Philistine. And Mr. B. finished
his dressing. As the crowd below began to be a
source of annoyance, he went down in a high
temper. He fiercely demanded what they wanted.
They said he had no passport and must return to
treaty limits instantly. He then demanded if there
was any one in the crowd authorized by the gov-
ernment to take him back. To which answer was
made that there was not. " And who is that big
samurai making all this row ? " " Oh ! He is a
Yakunin from the next village." " Then," said Mr.
B., "why is he making all this disturbance? I
must report him at Tokio. What is his name?"
But the fellow had vanished like smoke ! If you
A FEW REMINISCENCES. I 25
had looked down the next street you would have
seen him, clogs in hand, racing for the next village,
utterly oblivious of the fact that he had left his
towel and soap upon the veranda.
** And what's this crowd doing here, I should like
to know ? What are you blocking up the entrance
for? Has the government authorized you to be
annoying the people in this hotel ? I must take a
few of your names in this book of mine and repor^
the affair at Tokio," said he, drawing forth his
pocket-book. But there wasn't time to get a single
name ! With one impulse, the frightened throng
rushed forth into the street and scattered in all
directions, leaving the vicinity as quiet as you
please. And that ended the matter. In the
morning he returned within treaty limits.
All this sounds very strange to you, but it is
still a very characteristic description. In a few
years, however, I think the Japanese will become
more self-asserting. When that time comes this
letter will amuse the natives themselves.
This will be my last letter from Hirosaki. To-
morrow I start for Yokohama. My next letter I
hope to date at Tokio. It is with feelings of con-
siderable regret that I bid farewell to the Toogu-
Gakko and the scholars. They have been my
companions for eight months. They have been
kind and obliging in escorting me about the coun-
try. They have been diligent in their lessons, and
extremely polite in their deportment in the school-
room. I would much enjoy teaching them for
126 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
another year. But the lonely life I am leading is
beginning to wear me down. My successor is
already on his way here. He brings his family
with him. He will, no doubt, be able to remain
here several years. With a wife to attend to your
house, you can live very comfortably here. I must
be about my packing.
Farewell,
Theophilus Pratt.
P. S. — I am writing this at a little village outside
of Hirosaki. We left at daylight this morning.
There was a slight fall of snow, and the road was
very slushy. The scholars followed me two miles
out of the city. They then stopped, and one of
them stepped out and made a speech in English.
He thanked me in the name of the school for my
kindness and care in instructing them ; said that
they were sorry the place was so lonely ; but that
they had all tried to make it pleasant for me, and
hoped that my journey would be a pleasant one.
I was not prepared for this speech. But, turning
in my saddle, and looking down upon the upturned
faces and moistened eyes, I was really touched. I
shall never forget that scene. There they stood in
a semicircle, ankle deep in the mud, and shivering
with the cold. Each face was touched up with an
expression of genuine sorrow; for they had all
been my companions in my loneliness, had all taken
their turns in escorting me in my walks, had all
been my faithful pupils. Under the inspiration of
A FEW REMINISCENCES. 12J
the moment, I spoke for several minutes in reply,
" Boys," said I, ** we have now taken our last walk
together. I shall now journey on to Awomori ;
but you must return to your native city. I thank
you for your many kindnesses to me during my
stay in Hirosaki. Without you, my stay would
have been very lonely indeed. I thank you for
your diligence in your studies. By your diligence
and kindness you have made my stay very pleasant.
Perhaps I may never return to Hirosaki. Perhaps
I may never see Iwa-ki-san again. But I can never
forget the school and the scholars of the Toogu-
Gakko. Should you ever visit Tokio or the United
States, I shall always be much pleased to sec you.
In the meantime, diligently continue your studies.
I hope we shall meet again in this world. If not, I
hope we shall meet in the next. I hope you will
all meet with great success. Farewell." They all
bowed low, and my horse bore me down the road.
I looked back several times, and there they stood.
I can see them now, almost, as I write this. I really
did not know there was so much feeling in the
Japanese nature. When you have once gained
their confidence, they are very affectionate. But
their enmity, when once roused, is implacable.
Yours in haste,
Theophilus Pratt.
Awomori, November 19, ' 74.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
Before sending off my last letter, I met with a
128 LET TERS FROM J A PA M
delay that detained me in this place nearly a week.
I take this opportunity to send you a copy of
the farewell address presented to me by the di-
rectors and scholars several days before starting.
It will serve as a kind of third postscript.
ADDRESS.
Since you came, last spring, to the school of
Toogu, sailing over the waves, crested with foam,
and taking no care of the uncivilized waste, you
have taught the scholars for eight months, with
your patience and industry. The fruits growing
abundantly on the scholars, they made greater prog-
ress, having compared to the last year.
The effect was chiefly brought about by your
wonderful energy. For the association, thus re-
ceiving your kindness hitherto, I have no words to
express the gratitude. Hereafter, I wish to reward
your trouble of teaching, with the perfection of
their study, with all my heart.
Up to this time, you are living in the lone place
without any friend to speak each other, save a few
scholars. As you know, I being silly, not only I do
imperfectly all that is required, but as I cannot
speak the English like a dumb, have no means to
comfort you, though I know your weariness and
loneness.
Moreover, other disagreement to your wishes are
not few, but as these proceed from my being stranger
to the English, I cannot hope to pray anything but
the clear inference and forgiveness.
A FEIV REMINISCENCES. 1 29
The lacquer wares and silk threads are not, in
reality, excellent things, yet as these are the manu-
factures of the city of Hirosaki, I will offer these to
you as the parting presents. I pray you to receive
these.
9 Sagaki.
LETTER IX.
TOKIO.
Being a confidential Chat about the Metropolis.
ToKio, May 31. 1875.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
Your letter from Naples came duly to hand.
You ask me many questions about the situation
and general features of Tokio ; about the geological
aspects of the surrounding country ; about its his-
tory, its inhabitants, the methods to which we re-
sort for amusement, the present system of schools,
and the social features of the place in general.
Although your questions appear simple enough,
yet, to transfer my ideas accurately to your mind
through the clumsy media of pen and ink, will take
no little time and paper. Written descriptions
rarely convey accurate impressions to the reader's
mind, and it is correspondingly rare to find a knight
of the pen who docs not regard his version or de-
scription of place, character, or thing thoroughly
correct. It is amusing to notice how the same
question will be answered by different persons.
Ask a dozen residents of Tokio or Yokohama
whether gratitude should be considered an element
of Japanese character, and you will find yourself in
» » .
I » . » '
» • ••* >
AINOS.
(FrotH a Satire Photograph.)
TOKIO, I 3 I
possession of a vast and entertaining variety of af-
firmation, negation, and invective. Be it therefore
understood that we are only going to state our own
views upon the metropolis.
As the day is warm I shall lay myself out system-
atically for my work. In the first place, I have or-
dered the boy to put a couple of bottles of lemon-
ade down the well so that I may refresh my pen
betimes. I have ordered all the shojecs to be taken
out, thus throwing parlor, bedrooms, and dining-
room into one vast, airy apartment. So I am sit-
ting in a kind of pavilion opening out on all sides
into the garden. My chum has gone out for a day's
shooting in the paddy fields beyond the Sumida ;
so that my only companion is a little bull terrier
that divides its time between sitting on a chair
watching me write, and occasionally furnishing
periods by bouncing out through the shrubbery at
my neighbor's children who come peeping through
the bamboo fence at the ejinsan (foreigner). Please
excuse my shirt sleeves, for it is hot notwithstand-
ing the bay breeze that is playing through the
rooms.
Now I feel prepared for that first question of
yours. Let's see, what was it ? Boy ! bring me
that letter on the bed. Ah ! here we are : " Gen-
eral features of Tokio and the geological aspects of
the surrounding country."
In answering, we will omit the usual exordium
which begins by positively announcing that Tokio
is surely to be found transfixed by such and such a
132 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
parallel, and has never been known to be otherwise
than astride such and such a meridian.
The city of Yas/tikis'* and conflagrations is flanked
on the east by a lovely bay, on the north by an ex-
tensive stretch of level territory, and on the west
and south by miles and miles of undulating country
exquisitely diversified with picturesque ranges of
hills. This is the most extensive piece of low coun-
try to be found in the empire. It is the paradise
of the ubiquitousy/>/r/-^j/rfl man, for he can trundle
his establishment as far northward as Sendai, a dis-
tance of about two hundred miles, before he must
give way to the kago (palankeen) and the pack
horse ; to the north-west, he can meander peacefully
for ninety miles until the Nikko range impedes his
blissful course; and to the west, and south, the tra-
ditional even tenor of his way will meet with but
few obstructions for sixty miles. A fair geological
inference would be, that this rolling hill country
and plain is formed of the debris washed off from
the mighty spinal range during the floods of pre-
* A Yashiki was a style of feudal architecture peculiar to Yeddo.
The central feature was a palace of vast proportions. Around this,
on all sides, were gardens, lawns, and court-yards, covering fre-
quently many acres of ground. All this was then hemmed in with
an unbroken line of barracks arranged in a quadrangle and having
heavily barred windows and iron-bound gates of massive proportions.
Each Daimio had his Ya.<:/tiki in Yeddo wherein he and his army of
retainers resided during their long visits under the Tokugawa n'gime.
But few of these grand structures remain ; many were burnt during
the revolution ; and some of the finest, having been turned into gov-
ernment offices, were set on fire and destroyed by stoves improperly
set up therein.
TOKIO.
133
historic ages. The extensive rice flats of Echizen,
Kaga, and Echigo, on the west coast of Nippon,
show that the turbid streams were also busy on the
other side of the range. Mixed up with all this al-
luvial drift will be found large quantities of lava
from Fuji-san and Asama-yama. So much for the
geological features of the surrounding country.
The features of Tokio are various. The stranger's
impression of the city will be materially modified by
the time of the year, the state of the weather, the
moral tone of his jinrikslia man, and the importu-
nity of the Shiba priest. It is all very well, should
he chance to strike a day when the fickle metropoli-
tan climate chances to be smiling, and hit upon a
team of amiable bipeds, to make the columns of
that paper for which he is acting as foreign corre-
spondent beam with vivid eulogies on the divine
temperament of the native disposition, the tran-
scendent salubrity of the Japanese climate, the
beauty of the mausoleums, and the courteous de-
portment of the priesthood. But let him come up
on a day when the piercing gales from off Nantai-
zan are raising every available atom of dust and
pouring them down the streets in unremitting
clouds ; just let him try to view park and temple
with half-shut eyes and frozen liver ; just let him
drive like a hurricane to the station to catch the
last train, and then have a grand fight with thGj'ht-
riksha men ; have them push the money back in
derision ; have them follow him all the way to the
slip bawling in vociferous unison at the incompati-
134 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
bility of the pay with their gigantic exertions ; have
them grasp his clothing and bawl in his ears as he
is attempting to pass the slip ; and have a recollec-
tion of a sudden cessation of hostilities as a boot or
cane goes off into a promiscuous assemblage of ribs,
shins, and top-knots, and then a gloomy tinge will
be imparted to the columns of that public instructor.
The peruser thereof will gather the impression that
the word beastly but inadequately expresses the
Tokio climate ; that the temples are barracks ; and
that a jinriksJia man is a combination of vicious
balkishness and unutterable avarice, to be ranked
below the vilest of the vile.
Let us take a ride around the city. Visitors
have reduced the ** doing " of Tokio down to a
science. Let us suppose we are new-comers, and let
us go over the beaten track. Here we jump into a
jinrikslia at the station and merely say *' morroiv-
viorroiu " (slang for go sight-seeing), and the faces of
the crowd instantly become electrified with a beam
of intelligence ; and four happy top knots (only
two are necessary) immediately spring into position
fore and aft of the vehicle, and away they go yell-
ing like Modocs until we reach Shiba, in the south-
west portion of the city. Here we can well spend
a full hour in examining the mausoleums of the
Shoguns (Tycoons) ensconced upon the gentle
slopes of a deeply wooded hill. The elegantly
lacquered floors, the richly frescoed ceilings, the
pillars with exquisite arabesque designs, the mass-
ive tombs of stone and bronze, the carved and
TOKIO. 135
gilded walls, the bronze lanterns that look like
dwarfed minarets, and the cool, melancholy avenues
winding through the groves, will delight you ex-
ceedingly.
We now go through the castle grounds to
Asakusa, some four miles off, in the northern por-
tion of the city. Here we find an extremely large
and unromantic Buddhist temple. In the im-
mediate vicinity are all manner of shows. From
morn till dewy eve the place swarms with sight-
seers. Peasants, corporals, gaping military- recruits,
and crowds of women armed with babies, loom up
from all quarters of the metropolis to inspect the
miniature Barnums.
We now leave this uproar and confusion, and
make off for Uyeno, about two-thirds of a mile
north-east of Asakusa. This is a pretty park upon
a bluff. Scattered through the grounds are a few
temples of rather indifferent quality. Several of
the Shoguns were buried here. At one time this
park was the prettiest part of Tokio, and its tem-
ples were far-famed ; but the Imperial Revolution
of 1868 worked sad havoc with the shrines, and left
only a few inferior buildings and some bullet-
spattered gateways, which are rapidly disappear-
ing. From the tea booths that line the brow of
the hill, you obtain a lovely view of the city. The
pretty panorama stretches for miles to the west,
south, and east. And sixty miles to the south-
west, you see Fujisan lifting its flattened crest far
above the Hakon^ range.
136 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Leaving Uyeno, we drive down the Ginza, across
Nihon-Bashi (the center from which all distances
in the empire are computed), and reach the station
in time to catch the five o'clock train.
Regarding the history of Yeddo, or Tokio as it
has been called since the Imperial Revolution, you
will find that it does not date back four hundred
years. When the Pilgrim Fathers were clearing
away the timber from the cheerless shores of
Massachusetts Bay, the site of Tokio was waving
with tall grass and was tangled with under-
brush. A few hamlets of fishermen and peasants
were scattered here and there. The wild geese
from Ycsso could, with rare impunity, frequent the
marshes of the Sumida. Tokugawa lyeyas, while
campaigning In this vicinity, noted its rare adapta-
tion for a commercial metropolis, and his suc-
cessors made it the permanent capital of the
Tohtgawas. The great feature of the city is the
castle. The citadel was built by Ohta Dokan, The
two outer systems of circumvallation were subse-
quently added as the grandeur of the dynasty grew
apace. The circumference of the entire castle is
now eleven miles.
Scores of yashikis^ or palaces, sprang up all over
the city in order to accommodate the Daimios and
hordes of vassals that trooped with tithes and
homage from more than a hundred provinces.
Then, as a matter of course, merchants and trades-
men came in immense numbers and built up the
lowlands around the bay, beside the river, and
TOKIO. 137
along the base of the bluffs. It did not take long
for the glory of Kamakura to depart, and for
Yeddo to become the metropolis. Every favorable
breeze now brought fleets of junks scudding up the
bay, gliding up the Sumida, and creeping off into
the numerous canals that cut up the city outside
the moats. Rice, salt, charcoal, fish, oranges from
Kiushiu, sea-weed from Hakodate, and lumber from
Chiba, were some of the cargoes. This was the
great epoch of commercial prosperity in Japan.
For three centuries a profound peace reigned
throughout the empire.
But Yeddo itself was always a scene of bustle
and excitement. Between conflagrations, earth-
quakes, processions of Daimios coming in from the
provinces, and brawls between members of hostile
clans, the mildew was not allowed to settle so
thoroughly as it had done in other parts of the
realm. New Year's Day was the great festive
occasion. Friends exchanged visits and feasted.
There is but little doubt that New Year's calling
was introduced into America from Japan. The
Dutch at Desima carried it to Holland, and the
Knickerbockers then carried it to New York. The
custom does not prevail in England. On this day
the Daimios in Yeddo presented their respects to
the Shogun.
The next event would be the annual visit of the
Dutch delegation from Desima. After their chief
had, on his hands and knees, crawled into the
presence of the Generalissimo of the Four Coasts,
138 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
prostrated himself, and then crawled back again ;
and after his companions had sung Dutch songs,
danced Dutch jigs, and kissed Dutch kisses for the
entertainment of the royal household, they would
be sent back with a few presents to Kiushiu {vide
Kacmpfer).
Then some powerful northern Daimio would for
several days pour his retainers along the Oshiu-
kaido, and another army of savmrai would stream
up the Tokaido from the south. Bustle and ex-
citement would follow until they were settled down
in their yasliikis. How the children and the
women tried to catch glimpses of the lords through
the chinks in the doors !
But Yeddo wanted variety. So some windy
night an incendiary, or careless waiter girl, would
set fire to a house, and away would go about a
quarter of the city. These vast conflagrations oc-
curred about every two years. They usually began
beside the moat and would lick up everything
down to the bay. With the exception of the
castle, the city was rebuilt about every eight or
ten years.
At another time the community would be enter-
tained with a grand street duel between hot-headed
samurai. Then some high officer, who had ren-
dered himself obnoxious to his subordinates, would
be hacked in pieces in broad daylight by a sudden
dash of assassins rushing upon him at some unex-
pected point. Japanese in feudal times had to use
great care in addressing each other. A word, a
TOKIO,
139
gesture, an uncourteous expression of voice, has
frequently given offense that has been avenged
after years of nursing. The rude oflficial was sur-
rounded with scores of thirsty blades awaiting
some dark night or unguarded yashiki. The ex-
treme politeness of the Japanese is the product of
feudal etiquette.
Next, perchance, would occur a social tragedy.
Some Daimio has insulted one of his vassals. Feu-
dal etiquette stigmatizes any samurai who raises
his hand against his lord ; so the fiery vassal calls
his friends together, settles all accounts, and immo-
lates himself on the shrine of honor by performing
the hara-kiri.
And now nature steps in and a violent earth-
quake sends the city scampering into the streets.
These shocks were generally quite harmless. On
two occasions, however, since the founding of the
city, the greater portion of Yeddo was thrown down
and burned. As many as twenty thousand people
perished on one of these occasions. But these epi-
sodes were never allowed to interfere with trade.
A Japanese merchant is not so easily disconcerted.
With only five dollars in his pocket, he will set up
shop again, while the embers of his former estab-
lishment are still smoldering. The whole burned
district will be rebuilt in a month. The center of
every merchant's house is a fire-proof go-down (ware-
house). When a fire-alarm is raised, he hastily puts
all his valuables inside, seals up the cracks with
clay, leaves a lighted candle inside, securely bolts
140 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
the door outside, seals it also with clay, and takes
up his clothing and bedding and leisurely goes to
the nearest open piece of ground and camps out all
night. The next day he builds up a frail, tem-
porary domicile around his go-down. No attempt
is made to fight the fire. The Yeddo merchant is
emphatically a man of business. Accustomed to
handling money, he has acquired a reputation for
energy and liberality. Accustomed to bustle and
excitement and to variety in customs, he has be-
come decidedly cosmopolitan in his tastes, and fond
of all kinds of innovation. Accustomed to a thriv-
ing business atmosphere, he has acquired a brisk-
ness of action and a recklessness in speculation that
quite take the breath out of a north countryman,
and instill a mingled feeling of contempt and ad-
miration into the effete being of a victim from
Kioto. It has been his lot to deal too frequently
with impetuous J^w7/rtf/, who often settled bargains
with their swords. And this experience has given
him a finished politeness of manner, which renders
him a fit model for some of our home clerks, and
an obsequious pertinacity in adhering to prices that
renders him an object of disagreeable comment at
times to his European victims.
But old Yeddo has passed away. The arrival of
Perry marked an epoch in its history. Consterna-
tion filled the court when it was known that a for-
eign fleet rode at anchor only a few miles below the
capital. They must be instantly ordered off. But
they refuse to go without delivering an important
TOKIO,
41
letter to a high official ! Are they then unlike the
Dutch ? Aye, and are persistent in their demands.
Terror spreads from the court to the city. The
merchants begin to carry off their valuables to
places of safety. A general exodus appears immi-
nent. Old samuraiy who had been lamenting the
decline of chivalry, now begin to snuff carnage and
breathe vengeance against the intruders. But the
pressure is too great, and a treaty is reluctantly
made. Dissatisfaction seizes the samurai. Angry
mutterings come from the north, the west, and
the south. The political sky grows black. Never-
theless, the foreign trade prospers. The merchants
become opulent. The prices of silk, rice, and tea
become trebled. And all the pressure falls on
the samurai^ who alone derive no benefit from this
outside traffic. And, as if infatuated, the Shogun
makes treaties with other nations, and opens other
ports. This must surely be stopped. The Shogun
is favoring the barbarian beasts and is betraying
the national interests ! He is urgently petitioned
to expel the intruders, but replies that it is beyond
his power. Then the discontented samurai trans-
fer their allegiance from the Shogun to the Mikado,
and, for the first time in centuries, the tide of
power sets from the east toward the west ; the
chrysanthemum begins to prevail over the mallow
leaves, and the imperial voice commands the Sho-
gun to annul the treaties and expel the barbarian.
The answer is that things have gone too far. No
power can annul the treaties. Heavier and darker
14^2 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
hangs the political sky over the house of Toku-
gawa. Influence rapidly deserts Yeddo and flows
steadily toward the Gosho and the Phenix car. The
Shogun, unable to carry out the imperial decrees,
is commanded to lay down his office. Unwilling
to raise the standard of revolt against the son of
heaven, he retires into voluntary exile, after a vain
attempt to wrest the imperial person from the
grasp of the hostile and powerful Satsuma clan.
The Aidzu and Tokugawa clans, however, bitterly
continue the struggle unavailingly. They are
driven from Kioto, pressed steadily backward upon
Yeddo, fight desperately for a few days in the
Uyeno grounds, are driven slowly northward, and
arc finally vanquished in their last furious struggle
at Hakodate in Yesso. And the Mikado, who has
been ruling by proxy for more than a thousand
years, comes to Yeddo and rechristens it Tokio.
And now out with the barbarian ! But hold !
What means this sudden change? Has the Mikado
gone mad ? Was not the rallying cry of the revo-
lution, " Down with the Shogun ! Out with the
barbarian!" Yet he is far exceeding the Shogun
in his liberality ! More favorable treaties are made !
Additional ports are thrown open, and foreign
civilization is introduced !
This singular transformation must rank as one of
the most extraordinary changes in history. The
new government clearly saw the folly of struggling
against foreigners, and, as only Japanese can do,
gracefully bowed to the force of circumstances.
TOKIO, 143
Arrogant and haughty when in power, they well
know how to be humble and obsequious when
under power. And so, not without a pang of re-
gret, we bid farewell to Yeddo.
Tokio is quite a new city. The castle has been
much dismantled, so that the people may more
speedily forget old times. Almost all \,\iQ yashikis
have been destroyed. Houses patterned after Eu-
ropean models have sprung up everywhere. Just
accompany me for a short time and we will note
the main points of interest.
Let us begin, then, at Tsukidji, the foreign con-
cession. It is down on the bay. In former times
it was a snipe-pool, but it has been sufficiently filled
in to make a fair piece of property. The location
is not very healthy. At ebb tide, three or four
miles of mud-flats are laid bare under the very
noses of the community. The wells are brackish.
In some parts dampness and malaria render the
ground floors unsafe for sleeping purposes. For
foreign commercial purposes it is a failure, as the
water is shallow for eight miles into the bay. The
merchants, therefore, have pronounced anathemas
upon the place and concentrated their forces at
Yokohama. The place is at present almost entirely
occupied by missionaries, who have made it one of
the most presentable spots in Tokio. Like Desima
at Nagasaki, it is an artificial island hemmed in
with broad canals. But unlike Desima, no Yaku-
nins stand guard at the bridges to prevent egress
and ingress. The Tokugawas little dreamed that a
144 LET! ERS FROM J A PA N.
Dutch legation would ever be built within a mile
and a half of Nihon-bashi.
Tsukidji is also dangerously situated as regards
fires. The northerly gales carry all the conflagra-
tions down in this direction, so that it has on one
occasion been burnt out, and badly scorched on an-
other. On such occasions the creaking of well-
ropes, the roar of the multitudes streaming by, the
blinding clouds of glowing cinders, and the blazing
tatamis, borne along on clouds of dust, render the
scene interesting, and hot for the fire volunteers.
Tsukidji has four churches, two legations, three
seminaries, a hospital, a hotel, a butchery, an orphan
asylum, and half a dozen parsonages.
Half a mile southwest of Tsukidji is the Naval
College, an institution with an able staff of English
instructors. Beyond this is the Sei-0-Ken, a hotel
upon foreign ideas, kept by the Japanese. In build-
ing it the chimneys proved a failure, so they have
run innumerable stove-pipes through walls and win-
dows, until the institution resembles a huge soap-
boiling establishment. They, however, serve up a
capital tabic d'liStc, They have also introduced the
civilized institutions of bar-room (patronized almost
entirely by Europeans) and bilHards. The reading-
room has a fair assortment of foreign journals, in-
cluding some of the indecent illustrated literature
of New York city.
Another half-mile brings us to the railway sta-
tion, a building that would do credit to any country.
Another half-mile brings us to Yamato-Yashiki, a
THE I'BIQLTTOt'S JINRIKISHA.
TOKIO. 145
pretty bluff covered with fine European houses for
the use of foreigners in the employ of the Survey,
Telegraphic, and Engineering Departments. Under
the old rdgime this was one of the aristocratic por-
tions of Yeddo. Here we also find the Ko-bu-sho,
the Department of Public Works. It is a massive
yashiki turned into offices. Near this stands the
Engineering College, which possesses the finest
group of buildings in Japan. They are substan-
tially built of brick and stone, and would be a credit
to any country. It has a large staff of European
instructors, and is in a most flourishing condition.
We now cross the moat, and turn to the west.
Upon a bluff that skirts this part of the city we find
the Mining Department. It is a magnificent old
yashiki. This institution seems to accomplish but
little beside giving employment to a horde of sunt-
urai^ whose prime occupation seems to be drawing
pensions, and meeting every day to annihilate end-
less supplies of weed in discussing ways and means
for — for (does anybody know ?) — for a continua-
tion of the present order of things perchance. The
natives are so jealous about the mineral resources
of their country that they grudgingly allow any
outside inspection. Once in a while an engineer
will be sent through the provinces on a tour of
inspection. His reports are then duly considered
and ignored, until lapse of time renders it necessary
to organize another expedition to keep up the de-
lusion that something important is being done by
the Mining Department.
146 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Passing northward for a mile along this pretty
bluff we come to the British Legation, an immense
" compound " surrounded by a substantial brick
wall. In the center rises the huge residence of Her
Majesty's Minister. Scattered through the spacious
and pretty grounds are small brick houses for the
Consul, the student interpreters, and a host of under-
lings usually connected with an English legation
in the East. In fact, the emperor himself does not
live in such style. These magnificent legations,
found wherever the cross of St. George unfurls to
the breeze, are truly indicative of the power of the
British Empire. But their immense cost, taken in
connection with the prolific capacity of the house
of Hanover-Brunswick, makes it rather disagreeable
for the common run of English taxpayers. My ex-
perience is that Americans, behaving themselves,
are just as much protected and just as well received
abroad as Englishmen, even though our people do
not lavish money on their legations. The American
citizen does not seem to need so much protection
as a British subject. He behaves himself better
toward the people of a foreign country, and con-
sequently has less collision. Englishmen have been
frequently cut down in Japan. I do not know of
any native-born American so dealt with. There
have been one or two naturalized ones assassinated,
I believe. When the British subject learns to deport
himself like a gentleman upon all occasions toward
inferior races he will be disposed to dispense with
the expensive luxury of being too much governed.
TOKIO. 147
This entire bluff is known as Ban-Cho, and in
old times it was highly favored by the aristocracy.
Many pretty villas are scattered all over it. At
the end of the bluff we find a light-house and a
race-course. Rather an odd place for a light-house,
you will say, and so it is. It was built in honor
of the braves who fell fighting for His Majesty
during the revolution. There is a weird supersti-
tion that it serves to guide the departed souls,
should they chance to be hovering near during the
cheerless hours of night. However that may bo,
'tis surely a fine beacon for belated travelers who
have not been so happy as to fall in the Imperial
service.
This vicinity is a sort of Campus Martins. Sev-
eral times during the year races, wrestling, fireworks,
and sports of various descriptions take place here.
Hither swarm all classes of natives, and fill the
boxes and scaffoldings that have been thrown up
around the race-course. These are occasions of
thrilling interest to the youth of the city. The
horse-racing is the funniest portion of the whole
programme. Each race is contested by half a dozen
specimens of slab-sided horseflesh. At some un-
couth signal the startled animals rush forward ; at
the first turning at least one pair of shanks describes
a cycloid over the nag's head ; at the second turning
another candidate for glory prosaically measures his
length in the mud ; and at the finish two or three
demoralized nags come shambling down the home-
stretch amid a feeble cheer, being kept from loafing
148 LE TTERS FROM JAP A N.
up against the fence to rest by the vigorous use of
tongue and stick.
Passing down the hill we come to an extensive
level district filled with the houses of the common
people. Near the moat is the *' compound " of the
Kai-Sei-Gakko, the Imperial University of Japan.
The buildings are not so elaborate as those of the
Engineering College, but it is in quite as prosperous
a condition. It furnishes a good curriculum of
studies, and has an able staff of foreign instructors.
The location, however, is low and unhealthy.
Crossing to the northward we come to Tsu-
ruga Dai, reputed to be the highest bluff and
the healthiest locality in Tokio. Here we find
many fine houses in European style, also a large
Russian church, and an extensive female seminary.
The atmosphere is very pure, and the view is
lovely. The city stretches away for miles. Yon-
der is the tall roof of Mitsui's Bank, rising like a
tower above the general level of houses around it.
There lies the terraced, thrice-moated castle. There
stretches the Ginza like a streak of snow, its modern
style strangely constrasting with the surrounding
architecture. And nearly four miles to the south-
east you see the spires and gable-ends of Tsukidji;
while far down the bay you see the forts built
across the Shinagawa Shoals at the limits of the
suburbs.
And this is Tokio, with its five years of modern
improvement, its schools and colleges, its twenty-
eight square miles of animation, bustle, and trade.
TOKIO. 1 49
As to your question concerning the climate of
Tokio, a few words will suffice. January and
February are cold but clear months. But little
snow falls ; and the ponds, canals, and river are
rarely frozen. A penetrating northerly wind makes
you feel the cold to be trying. The gusts are very
fickle. You will first have three or four days as
balmy and as lovely as May, and you allow your
fires to burn very low. Then your blinds begin to
rattle, and a freezing gale rushes down from Nikko-
san and takes the city by storm, making it misery
to go out, and making it almost impossible to keep
warm should you chance to be living in a native
house. The month of March is even more change-
able. About the middle of April you begin to drop
your overcoat and bank your fires. The flowers
now begin to come out. Crowds of people daily
flock to Uyeno and Asakusa to see the beautiful
groves of cherry trees buried in floating masses of
pink and white blossoms. May is usually as lovely
as can be desired, — although a little fire is agreeable
in the evenings and on a few days when the fickle
blasts of winter suddenly return as if loath to be
exiled in the northern solitudes. The month of
June is rainy and muggy, and everything becomes
sticky and moldy, — an occasional fire is sometimes
in order even in this month. July and August
settle down to clear weather and steady heat, which
is usually moderated by a typhoon near September.
The last-named month is rather inclined to be
rainy. October and November are simply perfec-
I 50 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
tion, and December is almost as good. You start
a low fire about the middle of October. For at
least five months a steady fire is essential to com-
fort. It is reported, however, that certain Scotch-
men go nearly the whole winter without any arti-
ficial heat. This does not, however, indicate the
average capacity for enduring cold of our com-
munity, for to chill the blood of some of these
Caledonians would require the windward exposure
of an iceberg. The climate is healthful on the
whole. The grass is green all the year; and the
camclias bloom all winter. The drinking water of
Tokio is bad, especially in the low lands. The
immense above ground drainage in gutters is
thought to infect the springs. Filtering and boil-
ing are resorted to. Much water is also brought
from more favored localities in wooden pipes. The
natives always drink tea, and are therefore not much
annoyed in this respect. From December to March
small-pox is an epidemic. The natives pay no
more attention to it than we do to the measles.
Almost everybody has had it. It does not seem to
take violent hold of bodies nurtured with vegetable
food. Foreigners are not much troubled with it,
however. Cholera is an anomaly. Rheumatism
and consumption are the prevailing ailments. The
peculiar leg dropsy is very fatal to many. This is
a malady unknown to us; it always begins at the
knee and travels upward and attacks the vitals.
The conflagrations form the most disagreeable
feature of Tokio. They have a regular season,
TOKIO, 1 5 I
which almost invariably commences in the middle
of November and lasts all winter. They are at-
tributed to poverty-stricken incendiaries ; carpen-
ters, clothing merchants, and lumber dealers being
the popular scapegoats. But the fact that fires are
coincident with the approach of cold weather and
the consequent use of kebachis (braziers), argues
that they are the result of carelessness on the part
of the natives, who are notoriously heedless in car-
rying shovels full of blazing charcoal all over the
house to different hebachis. You frequently find
the tatamis in a Japanese house scored with charred
holes, — silent witnesses of the shuffling carelessness
of a free-and-go-easy waiter girl, who invariably
laughs and says ** nara/iodo'* (indeed) when you call
her attention to them.
Life in Tokio differs much from that in Yoko-
hama; the latter place, in fact, is not Japan at
all. The European society is composed of pro-
fessors, missionaries, employees in the different
departments, and a few of the intelligent Japanese
who have been abroad. The teachers of the engi-
neering colleges and the employes of the Ko-Bu-
Sho live at Yama-to-Yashiki. The teachers of the
Kai-Sei-Gakko live partly in the vicinity of the
university and partly at Kaga-yashiki, two miles
northward. Quite a number of clerical and secular
people live at Suruga-Dai, while the missionaries
have monopolized Tsukidji. You will see, there-
fore, that distances of at least two miles separate
the five branches of the Tokio community. It is
I 5 2 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
a hard day's work to make the round on New
Year's Day. One is surprised when he hears that
the directory has six hundred names down as resi-
dents of Tokio. Manj' are scattered around in ob-
scure places. Many are in the employ of the
Mitsu-Bishi Steamship Company and are only
nominal residents of the place. Others, whose
names arc down, are in the employ of the Kitakushi,
and Mining Department and are off in Yesso or
Akitah. So that it is safe to say the average com-
munity docs not exceed three hundred. And as
educated Japanese return from abroad and fill
positions now occupied by foreigners, this number
will rapidly diminish. The native population is
about eight hundred thousand. In the days of the
Tokugawas, however, when armies of retainers
filled the numerous YashikiSy it exceeded a million
and a half.
Our leisure hours and business hours are variously
employed. If you are adviser to a department of
government, you dole forth the requisite amount
of admonition (which may or may not be heeded),
invest largely in curios, drive around in a carriage,
keep your temper when interfered with by officious
Yakunins, wisely let the department take its own
course, and set an example of heroic intrepidity
and commendable punctuality in drawing your
salary as the appointed day rolls around. Even if
you do not chance to be an adviser to a department
but hold some subordinate position, you will also
find pay-day to be an interesting season of much
TOKIO. 153
unction. If you are a missionary you will find
your time well taken up with studying the capri-
cious language, teaching, preaching, and a few
social duties. If you are a teacher in one of the
government schools, you will find your life singu-
larly unique. Your first move on coming to Tokio
is to get a house, provided the government has
not already furnished one for your accommodation.
This undertaking usually assumes ponderous pro-
portions before success crowns your efforts. Natives
do not like to let good houses to foreigners. They
abhor the tracking of muddy shoes over their
tatamis. And then the cjinsan is so rough in hand-
ling a fragile Japanese house. He thrusts the pipe
of his stove through a wall and thus greatly in-
creases the risk of fire. Then he knocks down a
partition so as to have a large dining-room, and
makes a big hole in the wall by backing his chair
against it after a hearty meal. He drives about a
hundred and fifty nails into the posts all over the
house in order to hang up a multitude of pictures,
guns, fishing-rods, hats, boots, trowsers, and a
myriad of other things indispensable to his ideas
of comfort. On sundry occasions he spits tobacco
juice and an occasional mouthful of hot soup upon
the tatamis. And he invariably keeps a brace of
dogs that are perpetually jumping through the
shoJeeSy measuring their heights against the nicely
papered walls, or when not thus engaged, are pur-
suing botanical investigations by tearing up the
shrubbery in the garden and digging tunnels
154 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
through the artificial Fiijisatis, As I just remarked,
you will find it difficult to get a house at all. You
finally succeed in renting one on Ban Cho or Suruga-
Dai for about ten or twenty dollars per month.
You usually have a long bicker with the landlord,
who wishes you to insure the premises against fire.
He tells you that this is a regulation of the Tokio-
Fu (city government), and that all cjinsatis must
comply with it before taking a house. Steering
clear of this imposition, you finally secure the
premises upon your own terms. For twenty dol-
lars you can get a fine house with a large yard.
You then invest in about thirty dollars' worth of
furniture, set up your stove, and paper up all the
crevices. A few panes of glass along the shojccs
looking out into the yard complete your prepara-
tions. You generally get some other gentleman to
take a part of the house, and you keep bachelor's
hall together. Your next step is to get a boy.
You walk over to Yama-to-Yashiki to see if Peak's
boy can recommend one. To be sure he can, he
has a friend who is an excellent cook, and happens
to be out of employment because his master's con-
tract was not* renewed by the Ko-Bu-Sho. He
shall come around to-night. His wages? Well,
his late master had a large household and gave him
ten dollars per month. Ever get drunk? Never!
His credentials? Oh, he shall bring them with him
to-night. All right. Send him around this even-
ing. Promptly he comes in his best clothes and
well-polished top-knot. You and your chum then
TOKIO. 155
form yourselves into an imposing inquisitorial com-
mittee upon character. Albeit you consider his
appearance somewhat " fishy," and feel morally cer-
tain that he has borrowed or rented his credentials,
you nevertheless engage him on trial, and he begins
operations by blacking your boots on the spot.
Next week he brings his family around and stows
them away out of sight in some of the back rooms.
Thus you are thoroughly started in house-keeping.
As a matter of course, for the first two months
you are deeply engrossed in your classes. You
teach from four to five hours per day, Saturday
and Sunday being free. You find the students
quite different from scholars in the interior. They
are more forward in conversation, being not so
modest or timid as north-countrymen. Some of
those who have been under inferior specimens of
instructors are rather inclined to be insolent and
intractable. They possess little of the deferential
politeness found in boys who have never come in
contact with the libertines of the Treaty Ports.
Having access to libraries, you frequently find them
plagiarizing their essays. Considerable vigilance is
required in detecting these frauds. The convicted
party usually laughs and says he was in a hurry
last Sunday to go off with his friends and see the
cherry blossoms at Uyeno. In my next letter I
am going to give you some specimens of these
compositions. I shall also give you a fuller ac-
count of the schools in Japan, as space will not
permit in this letter.
156 LE TTERS FROM J A PAN.
The only punishment allowable is ** imposition"
after school hours. After sentencing a precocious
youth to copy out ten pages of his reader before
going home to dinner, you find him very indus-
trious for a fortnight or so thereafter. The most
annoying experience connected with teaching is
trying to secure punctual and regular attendance.
They are frequently absent from recitations, so
that you have to be very exacting with them.
Their elastic excuses have to be rigorously reduced
to proportions of probability. After a few weeks*
experience, you find yourself compelled to fix a
definite limit to their decimation of relatives. You
begin to insist that parents are to die but once a
year ; grandparents, but once in six months ; and
immediate relatives are to be sparingly used up, as
occasion may require. And the ubiquitous plea of
important business is never to be tolerated without
specific definitions in writing.
As in the interior, the scholars are all the chil-
dren of samurai. No restriction is actually placed
on the admission of the children of the lower
classes; but, partly from the lack of appreciation
of the value of education, and partly from social
antipathy resulting from centuries of prerogative,
the children of the lower classes are unable to
derive much benefit at present from the schools
patronized by young bloods. This, of course,
makes it pleasanter for the teacher ; for the samurai
are not only more cleanly in their habits, but also
much superior as regards breeding and intelligence.
TOKIO. I 5 7
This is the result of centuries of superior advan-
tages.
As a rule, the scholars dress in native costumes,
and they look much better this way. The first
appearance of a small boy in coat-tails and tight
trowsers is quite paralyzing.
Nevertheless, you soon become really attached
to your class. You find many excellent specimens
of young men. Some of my most intimate ac-
quaintances have been among my scholars. While
freely associating with them, 1 have never known
them to presume upon my friendship.
Outside of school hours, the time of the foreign
instructor in Tokio is variously spent. In winter,
he will hurry off home, toast his feet at a stove,
and read until dinner time. After this, perchance,
he will go over to Yama-to-Yashiki and play chess
with Peaks ; or he may possibly prefer to walk
down Ban-Cho, and have a delicious season of gossip
with his colleagues respecting the probability of
getting a " rise ** at the end of the year. An oc-
casional evening spent in solemn conclave with his
chum in investigating the boy's accounts, and blow-
ing him up roundly for cheating, seems to give
much zest to one's mental tone.
About once a week he gives a "stag" dinner or
attends one. Should time, however, be still hang-
ing heavily, he can go down to Tsukidji and call on
the latest arrival of young ladies; and should his
taste for this species of diversion be strong, he can
occasionally journey on to Yokohama and shed his
158 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
beams on the most radiant localities along the
Bluffs.
As spring comes on, he begins to spend his after-
noons in visiting places of interest. He will first
go to see the pleasure gardens of the emperor
within the second moat of the castle. A Saturday
afternoon becomes well merged in the gloaming
before the lovely lawns, the bamboo groves, the
picturesque tea-houses, and the shadowy cascades
have been sufficiently admired. Another afternoon
can be profitably spent at Hamagoten, the Imperial
Gardens on the shores of the bay. These are
smaller than the former, but are more finished.
When the cherry groves and the avenues of
Mukojima are in full bloom, he can take a boat up
the Sumida, and spend a delightful afternoon in
walking down vistas of swaying blossoms that over-
hang the river banks for nearly a mile. Hither
flock the ^litc of Tokio upon every sunny after-
noon, and spread themselves out for an unlimited
treat of tea and cakes upon the verandas of the
tea-houses that line the river, or upon the stone
seats amid the box-wood copses.
It is also considered the "correct thing" to visit
the native theater at Shimabara two or three times
during the season. The play commences at eight
o'clock in the morning and closes at six o'clock in
the afternoon, frequently requiring many days to
render a single tragedy. The natives take their
dinners along with them and eat in the building.
The Japanese are consummate actors. Their
TOKIO, 159
farces and comedies are capital. The tragic acting,
however, I can not say so much for. There is so
much sameness and bloodshed connected with it
that you never care to see much of it. The
enunciation is very clear and distinct. The ges-
tures, from a Japanese stand-point, are certainly ex-
cellent. The tragic portions of their plots are very
monotonous. It is usually the same old story. A
hot-blooded samurai becomes insulted in some un-
pardonable manner — although as to what consti-
tutes an insult in the eyes of a young top-knot
thirsting for glory is by no means clear. A solemn
gathering of friends then takes place, and the
frightful provocation is duly discussed. After the
regulation amount of ** ftarahodoiftgy' the wrathful
Don Quixote furiously announces his determina-
tion for blood, b-1-l-o-o-d! Nobly said ! Blood must
be had! Sticking his vengeful blade into his belt,
he then swaggers off to find his enemy, who is
usually accommodating enough to be asleep, or up
to his chin boiling in a bath-tub. An amount of
promiscuous chopping and scientific hacking then
ensues that is supposed to thrill the soul of chivalry
with the very essence of admiration. Arms, legs,
thumbs, ears, slices of calf and thigh strew the
stage, to the unbounded approbation of the enrapt-
ured house. And during this scuffle the stage-boy
(supposed to be invisible) comes out and removes
the clogs that have been kicked off by the furious
combatants, so as to have them ready for the next
scene. After this, the hero himself becomes the
l6o LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
victim, to the unfeigned grief of the old ladies in
the pit, for the friends of the minced man take up
the quarrel, and arise in wrathful indignation and
smite the slayer some dark night, make an elaborate
example of him as he had done with his enemy,
and then tumble the remains into a river repre-
sented by a painted board ; while the moon, repre-
sented by a round paper lantern, is let down from
the roof, and the scene looks melancholy enough
amid the tolling of the monastery bells. So the
quarrel, thu5 thoroughly inaugurated, is taken up
by the relatives, and mutual extermination horrifies
the house for weeks to come. The tragedy usually
ends at three or four o'clock in the afternoon.
Then a farce is acted, so as to restore cheerfulness
to the house before breaking up for the day.
We Americans here usually celebrate the Fourth
of July. We sometimes have a ball at the Lega-
tion, or have a dinner at the Uyeno Park. These
occasions are always exceedingly jolly.
Our summer vacations we usually spend in trav-
eling. I will make this the subject of a future
letter.
After a stay of two years in Tokio you begin to
find the time hanging very heavily. You have ex-
hausted all the pleasure to be derived from wrest-
ling, horse-racing, and theatricals. Your study of
the native literature has reached that point where
you find it destitute of elevating thought. You
settle down to reading the history of the country
and keeping up with the news of the day. You do
TOKIO. l6l
everything mechanically, and it becomes difficult
to entice you out of your den. A kind of indolent
mental torpor seems to settle down upon you.
You derive infinite comfort from loafing on your
veranda, dozing over the last home mail, and dis-
cussing the latest scandal. Old residents here are
rare gossips. But thanks to the letters I have to
write to you, I hope not to drift into this imbecile
method of thought. I trust that I shall not de-
velop any remarkable keenness in becoming con-
versant with the private affairs of the community
at large.
I certainly shall not become a member of that
"outside committee" that sits in judgment on
every breath of scandal, and constitutes a most in-
defatigable agency for the propagation thereof.
I think I have answered all your questions.
Resting assured that I have endeavored to do so, I
am,
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
LETTER X.
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO.
TOKIO, /u/y lO, 1875.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
In my last letter I promised to tell you a little
more about school-teaching here.
In no part of Japan are the schools so thor-
oughly organized as they are in Tokio. The for-
eigners connected with the schools in Japan num-
ber about a hundred. Of these, at least fifty are
here in the metropolis. The highest salary paid is
nine hundred dollars per month. This sum is paid
to the heads of the engineering and educational de-
partments. One of these gentlemen is a Scotch-
man, and the other is an American.
The professors in the colleges receive between
two hundred and fifty and four hundred dollars per
month. The usual salary for teaching English is
about two thousand dollars per year.
Of course these high salaries will not last many
years. As educated Japanese return from abroad,
the number of Europeans in government employ
will be gradually reduced, and in twenty-five
years I doubt if there will be a dozen Europeans
in the schools here.
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO. 1 63
The government has also established schools in
Yokohama, Nagasaki, Osaca, Niigata, Kioto, and a
few inland .cities. But the number of European
teachers in each of these places will not exceed six ;
and in some of them only one is stationed. This
estimate, of course, does not include private schools
and mission schools.
The expense of keeping up this school system
cannot cost the government less than half a mill-
ion dollars per year. All the books, charts, globes,
ink, pens, and the usual school apparatus are im-
ported. They are furnished to the scholars at al-
most nominal prices. The tuition is free. A
Japanese student pays from seventy-five cents to
two dollars per month. There is but one school
that charges two dollars, for very few can afford to
pay this sum outside of their personal expendi-
tures.
Instruction is conducted altogether in English.
A new class will at first have some difficulty in
comprehending you. But after a few weeks they
master the phraseology and technical terms of each
branch of study so as to be able to recite and con-
verse very intelligently. Conversation here is made
a special study. Text-books have been prepared
containing English idioms and phrases. Some of
these books have been compiled by native authors ;
and some of the expressions therein used are very
amusing.
In teaching, you will find the scholars very tract-
able. The teachers are not allowed to chastise.
164 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
This method of suasion, in fact, is a species of bar-
barism that they have not yet copied from our
civilized home schools. It never pays to lose tem-
per or patience with Japanese. They have a thor-
ough contempt for any one unable to control him-
self. In managing your classes, the most effective
instrument is a mild touch of irony or sarcasm
judiciously administered. They are as sensitive to
this as mettlesome horses are to the touch of a
lash. But if too often used, you will soon find the
tables turned, for they also are expert at this kind
of thing.
When a boy is incorrigibly lazy, you will find it
an excellent idea to keep him standing an hour or
so at the map trying to find obscure places. Should
he attempt to lean against a desk, gently call his
attention to the fact that government property was
not made for such purposes. Should he attempt
to lean against the wall, intimate that both his per-
son and the wall will become thereby soiled, — a re-
sult not to be desired, because of the financial con-
dition of the country at large. The unhappy youth
then continues his work with great melancholy and
lack of enthusiasm.
The ages of my scholars average fifteen. They
are all of the samurai class. As a rule, they are
very polite and docile. They are particularly clever
in mathematics. In grammar and analysis they
stand well. In applied English they are fair. In
Japanese and Chinese they are instructed by native
teachers, and, as a rule, are good.
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO. 1 65
They do not board in the school, but come from
considerable distances. Some of them live four
miles off, and most of them live at a distance of
two miles. They always walk back and forth.
At a quarter to nine every morning you hear the
ceaseless clatter of about two hundred pairs of
clogs coming through the massive gateway. Their
lunch is a ball of cold rice with the inevitable salt
radish and fish. They are hard students, but I
do not think their diet will allow them to stand as
much continuous hard study as our students at
home can stand. They are much troubled with
weak eyes. They use candle-light mostly ; some
use kerosene lamps.
I find it very interesting teaching them applied
English. They have innumerable questions to ask
about our institutions and customs. They also
ask very many questions about Christianity. I
never knew how thoroughly saturated our literature
and history were with Christian thought and senti-
ment until I began to teach these people. Some
of the pages in a poem or review will require so
much explanation that my teaching almost becomes
a Bible lesson. The use of the term Creator, or
nature's first cause, will suggest a line of inquiry
that will take up an hour easily. Why do the
books speak of a Creator? Because the average
reasoning community in Christian countries accept
the fact that there is one. Can they prove this?
They can prove it so as to satisfy reasonable belief.
How ? By the theory of probabilities. There are
1 66 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
two suppositions. Either all things came by chance,
or they came by design. Now is it more probable
that the vast machinery of the universe came by
chance or by design ? By design, of course. Then
docs not design betoken intelligence? And does
not intelligent designing betoken a Creator? Yes.
Then is it not the most probable and reasonable
theory that the world was made by a Creator ? To
this they readily assent. But then comes a flood
of questions about Christianity. Why should
Christianity be called the true religion? Because
it contains the most perfect code of morality. If
Jhe Creator made man with such vast powers for
good and evil, is it not reasonable to suppose that
he would give him a law whereby to regulate his
thoughts and actions? And does not Christianity
answer this purpose perfectly? Can you compare
Buddhism and Brahminism with it ? Compare those
countries that have been under Buddhism and
Brahminism with those that have been under
Christianity, and will you not find the Christian
ones much more elevated ? Then is it not reason-
able and probable to suppose that the Creator gave
the Christian religion to man ? And when the
Bible itself calls it the true religion, why should we
not believe it?
They are so ready to ask questions on these
points that you sometimes are obliged to check
them. Some of them have read Mills and other
infidel authors, and are well up in all the hack-
neyed objections. They are very quick to see
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO. 1 67
single points, but they do not follow a succes-
sion of points down to a conclusion tenaciously
or logically. They are clear and bright, and
can suggest difficulties about as easily as they can
breathe. But they are always ready to laugh at
their exposed fallacies, and are very good-natured
under rough handling. They possess any amount
of self confidence, and are always ready to enter
upon the discussion of any subject that may arise.
The nonchalance and eagerness with which they
discuss weighty subjects is interesting. If they
fail to carry a point, they are rather amused at hav-
ing made as good a fight as they did. When a
hard lesson is on hand, some of them are rather
inclined to talk against time.
During the midday recess, they are as noisy as
you please. They romp all over the school-yard
playing tag. With their petticoats on, they look
more like a lot of girls at play. Some of the pleas-
ure-loving ones are apt to slip off and cut the
afternoon session. They dearly love to go with their
friends to the tea gardens at Mukojimaand Uyeno,
where they can discuss tobacco and foreigners with
endless comments. It takes a long time to break
them of this habit. They are puzzled to know why
the teacher should care about this regular attend-
ance so long as he is paid -anyway. One of the
boys was incorrigible on this point, and as a punish-
ment he was sentenced by one of the teachers to
stay after school and write a composition on idle-
ness. The youth evidently never exerted himself
1 68 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
to do justice to the subject. Here is a verbatim
copy of this remarkable document :
" IDLENESS.
*' I have a very great refuse for the letter, Idle-
ness, which now I made up the composition ; be-
cause the idleness prevented for a task of all the
people, and he was persuaded to induce in his idle
party, but was never fall on his hand. When I was
learning in any private school at last year, any idle
came to my room, how do you not swing in a play
place ? * he sales.* Yeas' I reply and I did so that
with he. how do you not take a walk in a street ?
again, yeas I reply, and soon, how do you not see
a spectacle ? he ** sales " too again, no ! then I
reply, how do you not go an eating house? he
"sales" too more, no! reply I. when all pupil
recite a meaning for each lesson, he sales always I
cannot, or I did not prepare ! ** why do you not so
study " I asked, because I can not endure heat
or cold " he sales, I dleam all sales thus, therefore
he spends the gold hour in vain, and he could not
succeed his purpose wherefore I was very refused to
describe it.
*' Diligent men were overpower on a poverty,
heat, cold."
Another naughty boy produced this on the same
subject :
" IDLENESS.
" There are an Idleness and Industrious in the
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO. 1 69
world and Idleness is more than Industrious, but in
the uncivilized countries is not so much because
this would studies for several lesson — and to dis-
cover for several thing and food which is very good
for bodies and shall not become to Idleness but
while is very Idlemen I supposed that it shall be-
come & industrious from their character if their
father and mother shall be right character and also
right conscience. In Japan the food is very as you
know — and Idlemen shall never move and go to
play to and for when they finished to eat food, as
soon' shall sleep therefore in Japan Idleness are
there gpreat but Japanese commenced to civilization
therefore Idlemen becamed to little number and
their begun to go to school.
" This composition is bad and mistaken to not
know the meaning of Idleness and I was sick there-
fore can not so good but I think always, it is
wrong."
Every Monday morning the whole school must
bring in compositions. Some of the scholars are
very nice writers. The penmanship usually is very
fine. Some compose as well as boys of a corre-
sponding age at home. They are, of course, not al-
ways idiomatic, but the pleasure-loving ones do
not make a very brilliant success at this essay
writing. Saturday and Sunday they spend in hav-
ing a good time with their companions, then
they get a book and craftily plagiarize some sen-
tences hurriedly selected. I send you literal copies
I 70 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
of some of these essays sent in by the notorious
truants of our school. They should serve as a ter-
rible warning to lazy boys through ^11 time to
come.
NO. I. — COMPOSITION ON THE BENEFITS OF POLICE.
" Police is a warlike and brave man and he have
big and long stick with which he defenses a blow
of a robber. Activity of a police is alway noticed
in every newspaper. The most warlike and bravest
fights eighteen robbers who were drest with the
drawn swords and he defenses himself with a stick
and at last, he takes them as prisoners. When
there is a fire a police works like a fireman and
tumbles down a houses with his stick. A police
goes before a person who carries baggages at a fire
in order to drive away the spectators so that he
carries them easily and quickly. If a person pre-
vents a police's or a fireman's work, the police beats
him or uses him to carry the water or to push a
pump, therefore I cannot stand heedlessly by see-
ing a fire."
No. 2.
Another one sent in the following poetry, highly
eulogistic of the policemen :
" We can't think their hardships in walking when
snowing or raining without rest.
When the midnight storm disturb our dream.
We see them in watch under nature's dome :
SCHOOL-TEACHING IN TOKIO. 171
When the sun begin to rise in his majestic light,
We meet them walking regardless severe cold of
heat." (!!!)
No. 3.
** Police is the regulation of city or policeman is
one of the constabulary force, who is officer in
Japan : the rule are make very hard to him, be-
cause in the among them like an idle rosal, (?) but
half of their are study, and so I think so that. The
police man is very much necessary for the people,
because he is defeat in city for every days and
night, when the policeman saw the thief or bad
man, he is soonly taken prisoner and bringing to
the station of police then they are wants the inves-
tigation ; also here is a foolish man, who is fall
down into the river to die, it is very scarcely in
Japan ; and all thing of street engage to the police ;
the number in the station of police are about one
hundred and number of about eighteen one thou-
sand, among them Satsuma, Jesso are nearly above
them engaged to him, because they are savage and
warlike countries people in Japan, and so they are
strong men ; then the foolish man or thief man
less than the an ancient time, so that people are
glad of it."
NO. 4. — HISTORY.
** History is most important for a human to re-
member a past condition of ancient world, and the
I 72 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
history is one kind in the part of a science, there-
fore when a man learned the history would he ani-
mate his intellect ; and the history has remarkable
worth for a education that is led to goodness a peo-
ple, the reader imargin Napoleon, Washington &
Taiko they how do that do, and practice their good
ccMiduct, and they would not take a double wrong
for a old instance. But have no history in barbaric
country, therefore they knows nothing but savage
or fight ; therefore I think that all the science
would had been led from the history."
NO. 5. — USES OF THE ENGINEERING COLLEGE.
"College of Engineering which put in a Japan
that it is used for countries if it would not be there
people can not have mean to dig gold, silver, iron
and other metals in the mountains & there are sev-
eral way of the science, in the College of ingin^er-
ing. Now shall not describe of name & mean of
the science for have no time because I had my
father business. We shall wish to enter in College
of Ingineering; great examination for next year.'*
In closing my letter, it is but fair to remark that
but few compositions are so atrocious as the fore-
going.
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
\d
■UK TllMR np Tnw-f(-.,\ \V 4 t\Vv.VS- \Ik-k-(1 TPMPI.FLS.
LETTER XL
A SUMMER VACATION,
TOKIO, September lo, 1875.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
I spent my last vacation in making a tour
through the interior. This is about the only way
we have of spending our holidays. During August
there is a general exodus of foreigners from Tokio
into the interior. Some of us journey over to the
west coast. Some of us go down the Nakasendo
(Inland Road), or Tokaido (Coast Road) to Kioto.
Others roam through the mountains of Shinano and
Mino. While the majority visit Hakon^, Fujisan,
and Nikko. We do not have any great centers of
fashionable resort like Saratoga and Newport,
where the sultry summer days can be spent in sip-
ping mineral waters and lemonade upon cool ve-
randas and shady lawns. Our summer recreations
Bsually consist of a long tramp through the moun-
tains. These trips require much preparation and
planning. The selection of a route occupies at
least a week. Then you must lay in a supply of
canned fruits and vegetables, and some ham and
dried beef ; and you must look up a traveling com-
panion with whom to have a few animated discus-
174 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
sions upon the road. The natives have a great
advantage over us in making these excursions.
They merely pick up their heels and walk. A
handkerchief will hold everything they need on the
road, and they are the best-natured companions
imaginable. Being very fond of pilgrimages to
places of religious note, they also swarm through
the country during the summer. The objects and
places of veneration are varied. Sometimes it is a
volcanic cone that has become the residence of a
goddess; sometimes it is a shrine overlooking a
wild ravine ; or, perhaps, it is a cave by the sea-
shore, the haunt of some water-witch ; or it may
be a lake romantically embosomed amid some lofty
ranges where a gongcn^ or mountain spirit, plays
the mischief with the winds and the rains, sending
them storming across the plains with fearful fury
unless properly propitiated with yearly offerings.
When the snow has melted from Fujisan, thou-
sands will scale its stupendous cone, place their of-
ferings beside the shrines near the crater, worship
the sun as he rises from the waves, and gaze upon
the clouds floating thousands of feet beneath.
While the rice is yet green upon the stalks and the
crops are maturing for the autumnal gleaning, the
worthy peasant, with about three dollars in his
pocket for traveling expenses and religious contri-
butions, grasps his filleted staff and sets out upon
a tramp of about two hundred miles, visiting all
places of sacred interest on the way ; and in about
a fortnight he returns with sufficient unction to
A SUMMER VACATIO^\ 1 75
last a year, — for you must remember that the
masses are devout. Some have visited all the
noted shrines in the empire, taking a couple of
years or so for the undertaking. These pilgrim-
ages, however, were almost entirely confined to the
lower classes. The sa?nurai rarely felt inclined to
go tramping and sweating over the country at the
beck of sleek, oily priests that might chance to
have empty coffers. These gentlemen were dis-
posed to be fastidious in their tastes, visiting only
the most fashionable places, taking their own time,
and abundantly consulting individual comfort.
Their favorite resort was the celebrated shrines of
Nikko, situated in the heart of the central moun-
tain system of Japan, about ninety miles north of
Tokio. The locality is a tangled maze of glens,
wild ravines, cascades, woods, temples, and moun-
tain torrents. All the streams of the neighboring
ranges seem to meet in the vicinity, forming a de-
lightfully cool summer retreat. Ancient supersti-
tion has fixed this as the abode of certain gongen^
whose patronage is greatly to be desired, and whose
wrath must be assiduously appeased. The uneasy
hurricane winds that dwell in the misty caverns be-
side Chiusenji Lake hard by, and which often im-
petuously sally forth, tearing the thatch from the
roofs and flinging the grain prostrate in the mire,
are a source of grievous complaint, and need fre-
quent exorcisms and secret ceremonies to secure
them within their dripping chambers.
The shrines of Nikko are unparalleled for sym-
I 76 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
metry of proportion, elegance and variety of de-
sign, and richness of lacquering.
As these temples were on my summer pro-
gramme, I will now allow the pages of my journal
to describe my visit to them. I also hope that you
will get something of an idea how we spend our
vacations here.
July 23. — Not yet daylight. We must be ofif
so as to avoid the heat of the day. Have routed
Jack out of bed. We send the boy on ahead
so as to have dinner ready for us at midday.
Our clothing and provisions are stowed in a sep-
arate jinriksha. Off at last ! We are far beyond
Uyeno before the chill has begun to leave the
morning air. A few early risers are sliding back
their doors and rendering the premises vocal with
their stentorian yawnings. We run along the
Oshiukaido for about eighteen miles. The road is
flanked by paddy fields as far as the eye can reach.
Take dinner at a village. The butter and the currie
powder got hopelessly mixed up by the breaking
of the bottles. We sit on the mats and dine off
bread, roast chicken, and cheese. Small boy is
watching us through the fence. Jack asks him if
he is hungry. Boy wilts. Jack wonders why
foreigners can not make a living off rice. He tries
some. Jack ceases to wonder. Jack tries to eat
with chop-sticks. Landlady laughs. She wants to
taste the pickled cabbage and crackers. Pro-
nounces them kekko (splendid). Boy then washes
the knives and forks, and wc are ready to start
j4 summer vacation, 177
again. Call for the bill. It is four times too much.
Jack mildly expostulates with the landlord. He
replies that all foreigners pay such prices. Jack
says he is not a fool, and advises the landlord not
to be one. The landlord then comes down one-
half. Jack then says that he is a Mombusho official
of the seventh grade, and threatens to report the
extortion at Tokio. Landlord then comes to terms.
We prepare to depart. The landlord and his
family then escort us to the street and request us
to patronize them on our return. Continue our
journey. Road much the same as in the morning.
Villages numerous. The summer costume of peo-
ple similar to that prevailing around Hirosaki. The
men have only three feet of narrow cloth about the
waist. Only the lower classes are thus exposed.
At dusk we reach a large village on the banks of
the Ton^gawa. Cross in a flat-bottomed boat.
Spend the night at a small village on the other
bank. Sleep under a net. Find the native pillows
very hard. Are much bothered with a bad odor
from the drains. We request the rain-doors to be
left open all night. The landlady says she is afraid
the dogs will come in. But we carry our point. At
midnight I am awaked by the foulness of the air,
and find she has slyly shut them. Open them
again.
Jiily 24. — Breakfasted at daylight. The road
merges into a cool and lovely avenue of pine trees.
The country is becoming more interesting. It un-
dulates gradually toward the distant mountains.
I yS LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Wheat fields and wood lands take the place of rice
flats. Our road is now a stately vista that winds
like a serpent across the fields and through the
woods. With but trifling interruptions, it continues
for fifty miles until it loses itself in the mountains.
We walk and eat water-melons. The swarded
banks beside the road make lovely seats. It's
getting warm. We reduce our toilette down to
trowsers and singlets. Every mile or so we quaff
hot tea at little booths beneath the trees. Jack
keeps up his smoking. Japanese dogs are spoilt.
They lie right in the road, and never think of
getting out of the way. The kind-hearted coolies
never think of hurting them, and always pull
their vehicles to one side. Then they scold the
dog, and he wags his tail. Jack takes a load of
pebbles and keeps distributing them in advance.
Effect good. One pampered hound, fiowever, re-
fuses to stir. The coolies turn to one side. But
the wheel of Jack's vehicle passes over the gently
wagging tail. Dog went to the top of the embank-
ment at one leap. Seemed to be completely de-
moralized and discouraged. Everybody regards it
as the best joke of the season — dog excepted.
Reach Utso-no-miya at dusk. Only fourteen miles
from Nikko. We wait a couple of hours for them
to change the water in the bath-tub. While this is
being done, we hear a tremendous row downstairs.
. A large party of foreigners from Tokio are having
a row with their coolies. They are not fluent in
the vernacular, and the coolies are trying to impose
A SUMMER VACATION, 1 79
upon them. Thus it is the world over. Cheat the
stranger ! Fleece him ! Consider him legitimate
plunder! Curtain falls.
July 25. — The landlord says we are twenty-two
miles from Nikko. Distances in Japan are elastic.
The avenue becomes yet more imposing. Its deep
shade is cooled by the streamlets bubbling along
the roadside. Meet a couple of colleagues return-
ing to Tokio. We reach the village by midday.
The shrines are beyond it. The village is situated
upon a long slope, and in itself is not interesting.
A stream from the hiountains comes tumbling
down through the middle of the street. It forms
a convenient reservoir for the town. Quite a num-
ber of fox, hare, and deer skins are exposed for sale
in the shops. Our pretty hotel is some distance up
town. The terms are seventy-five cents a day. A
native would pay less than half this sum. There's
no help. All the hotel keepers are in league. Civ-
ilization is gradually striking in.
July 26. — We start off to see the far-famed tem-
ples. They are buried in deep forests about a mile
up the mountain side. Passing up to the end of the
long, straggling street, we come to a wild ravine
through which fiercely rushes a frothing torrent
from the highlands. Two bridges span the chasm.
One is intended for common use. The other was
intended for the Shogun and his envoys. It is
finished off with the finest red lacquer. The guide*
book (I wish all journals would specify what por-
tions are derived from guide books) narrates a
l80 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
curious legend about this gorge. Shodo Shionin, a
Buddhist priest of the eighth century, chanced to
pass this way with his disciples. He saw no
bridge, and found it impossible to ford the boiling
rapids, rendered doubly dangerous by the timber
plunging amid the eddies. While supplicating the
gods to extricate him from this dilemma, he indis-
tinctly beheld through the mist the god Shinsha
Daio, on the opposite shore, holding two green and
red snakes which he cast over the abyss. A long
bridge instantly spanned the flood ** like a rainbow
floating among the hills," The bewildered priest
was inclined to doubt his senses, but seeing the
grass growing between the planks, he was con-
vinced, and passed over. Immediately after cross-
ing they were astonished to find that the bridge,
the grass, and the god had vanished !
From this sacred bridge many paths branch
away in all directions, leading to numberless roman-
tic spots hidden away in the deep gloom of the
groves. For miles around, wherever a cascade
dashes down some sequestered ravine ; wherever a
mountain stream, widening in the glens, gives
glimpses of unusual beauty; wherever some spring,
slipping from the oozy fissures beneath some crag,
comes tumbling down the vale — there you will find
fantastic shrines in honor of some saint or gongen.
Weeks could be spent in following up these various
paths. Following the road up for some distance
through the woods we come to the temples of
lyeyas. They are built upon four terraces on the
A SUMMER VACATION. l8l
mountain side. The terraces are about fifteen feet
above each other, and are connected by flights of
stone steps. Cryptomeria groves of superb propor-
tions cast a deep shade over the place. The en-
tire premises are surrounded with a wooden wall
lacquered in red and capped with bronze tiles.
There are ten main buildings scattered over the
different terraces, besides many smaller ones. All
are built of kayake, the finest hard wood in Japan.
All are roofed with thin bronze tiles, and all are so
elaborately lacquered and gilded that none of the
underlying wood-work is to be seen. The natives
say that it took a boat-load of gold from Sendai to
furnish the gilding. However that may be, it is
certain that the resources of the empire were placed
at the disposal of the builders.
The first terrace is approached by a long, sloping
vista. On this terrace we find an elegant vermil-
ion-colored pagoda. It is covered with the gilded
crests of Tokugawa. A large granite torii (bird-
perch) and some tea booths constitute the remain-
ing structures.
We enter the second terrace through a handsome
gateway. Before us are three structures of exquis-
ite proportions and finish. In them were stored
the paraphernalia and Sanskrit literature of the
temples {Guide Book), Also, when the Shogun
came to worship the shades of the great lyeyas,
his retainers tarried therein, while their ** barbarian
exterminating lord " went up to the private chapel
on the fourth terrace. But the building that in-
1 8 2 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN,
variably excites the stranger's keenest interest is
the very stylish stable used by my lord's horse. It
is elegantly made. Each rafter is tipped with orna-
mented brass and stamped with the royal crest. It
is so thoroughly exhausted by the guide-book that
I shall not describe it. My only regret is that such
sumptuous accommodations should have been pro-
vided for a knavish betto and a vile, hammer-headed
pony.
Passing under a massive bronze torii we enter the
third terrace. On either hand stands a graceful,
airy belfry, faultless as regards symmetry and
shape. Several bronze lanterns are arranged along
the side. During the summer festivals, when the
ceremonies were prolonged beyond twilight, they
were lit up. Here also are some massive bronze
candelabra presented by the Dutch. The guide-
book suggests that they were sacked from some
Roman Catholic cathedral in the Spanish Nether-
lands during the wars between the Catholics and
the Reformers.
The fourth terrace is enclosed by a paneled wall
about eight feet high, abounding with decorations.
Before us stands the famous Yomei gate. (See
frontispiece.) It has exhausted the art and inge-
nuity of the architect. It is a bewildering maze of
tracery. For beauty of design and prodigality of
decoration, it is matchless. It is equally lovely
whether glittering in the sunlight or shimmering in
the moonbeams. The railing of its balcony is sup-
ported by dragons' heads. Just above the portal
A SUMMER VACATION. 1 83
are two white dragons linked in terrific combat.
Underneath you see groups of children playing.
Beneath these are clusters of Chinese sages in vari-
ous philosophical attitudes, such as only Chinese
philosophers can assume. The dragons, upholding
the massive roof, with their flaming eyes and gap-
ing crimson jaws, seem to be on the qui vive for
evil spirits.
Going through the gateway we enter the court-
yard where stands the chapel of lyeyas. It is an
architectural gem. Gable-ends, ridge pole, eaves,
rafters, and the very planking of the floor, exhibit
the consummation of native skill. For a full de-
scription of it, I refer you to Satow's Guide-Book
which I send you by this mail.
The tomb of lyeyas is further up the mountain
side. We ascend a long flight of moss-grown steps.
At the top, in the melancholy woods, is the weird
bronze monument that marks the spot where rest
the ashes of the great law-giver. It is somber and
plain. I cannot think of anything with which to
compare it. The historic interest, however, forms
a sufficient attraction. The martial pines stand
around in close array as if to guard Gongen Sama
in his long rest. He was the heart and soul of
Japanese feudalism. What the tomb of the Proph-
et is to the Moslem, such was the scpulcher of
Tokugawa lyeyas to the samurai. Antiquity bears
testimony to the reverence that has ever been paid
to the memory of the dead. Mausoleums, pyra-
mids, and pillars, built at prodigal expense, com-
184 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
memorate the deeds of ancient heroes. The pride
of Halicarnassus, the surpassing glories of the Taj,
and the matchless beauty of the Nikko shrines
equally testify to the appreciative character of
mankind in widely separated countries. During
the days of the Shogunate, swarms of samurai
flocked hither to worship the shades and propitiate
the favor of the departed with becoming offerings
and ceremonies. But the great dynasty has fallen,
and the pageantry that formerly streamed along
the great vista, exacting cringing deference from
the wayside folk, has faded away forever ; and the
beauties of the place only excite unpleasant mem-
ories in the minds of those who love the good days
when the trusty sword was the '' samurai* s living
soul."
July 27. — We visit the shrines of lyemitsu, grand-
son of lyeyas. They are about half a mile from
those described yesterday. A long avenue through
the woods connects the two. As they resemble
the shrines of lyeyas in almost every particular, I
shall not describe them.
July 28. — Visited several shrines of minor im-
portance scattered through the forests. Some of
them are of rare beauty.
July 29. — We followed one of the paths that
twists off from the Sacred Bridge and goes winding
through the thickets. We follow it up to where it
madly hurls itself through a narrow gorge. Here
we find upwards of one hundred and twenty large
stone images of Buddha in Nirvana. They are ar-
A SUMMER VACATION. 1 85
ranged along the shady bank in an extended line'
facing the water. With dreamy eyes they seem to
watch the spray that floats from the foaming cur-
rent. The Guide Book asserts that in counting
these images, no two persons will return the same
figures. Jack and I made an elaborate attempt to
get the same result. He began at one end, and I
began at the other end. While counting we placed
our canes upon each figure. " What do you make ? **
said I. " One hundred and twenty-seven," said he.
"One hundred and twenty-five," said I. We try
agrain. ** One hundred and twenty-four," said he.
" One hundred and twenty-two," said. I. We then
appealed to a Japanese, and he said the correct
number was one hundred and twenty-three. He
then counts them himself in order to show us, and
comes out one hundred and twenty-one ! We give
it up as a bad job. One gets confused at the
similarity of the faces and at the noise of the roar-
ing torrent. Besides this several of the small
images are overgrown with grass, and you are al-
most sure to overlook some.
July 30. — We decide to visit Chiusenji Lake and
the cascades, seven miles or so further up the moun-
tain side. We get off early. The road leads
through gorges and ravines of the most savage
grandeur, where the foaming torrents from the
lake thunder at the feet of dizzy cliffs and shiver
themselves into spray against the massive bowlders
that have fallen from the heights above.
A steep climb up the side of the mountain brings
1 86 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
US to an elevated plateau about four thousand feet
above sea level. On the right rises the volcanic
crest of Nantaisan, looking out upon the distant
Pacific nearly eight thousand feet beneath. In the
plateau is embosomed lovely Chiusenji Lake, en-
circled by densely wooded hills. It is seven miles
long, and is very deep. It is said to contain no
fish. Upon its border is a village, which is occu-
pied by thousands of pilgrims during the summer.
But when the winter has settled down upon the
mountain, freezing the lake and filling the glens
with snow, then the houses are utterly deserted.
The cascades in this vicinity are of peerless
beauty and pleasing variety. The outlet of the
lake, after winding through several hundred yards
of woods and tangled underbrush, falls seven hun-
dred and fifty feet into a fearful abyss. The width
of the cascade at the top is about fifteen feet. But
it spreads out into a comet-like cloud of spray long
before it reaches the bottom. You can but faintly
hear it as it falls whispering into the dark pool be-
neath. On three sides the rocks descend sheer,
thus encircling the boiling gulf and presenting an
appearance of hideous grandeur. A tea booth
perched upon the brink of the chasm furnishes a
superb outlook. The dense woods grow up to the
very edge, as if the monstrous shaft had been sunk
with precision and care. It is called the Kegeon-
no-taki — taki meaning cascade. We lunched on
the border of the lake in a native hotel. There are
quite a number of pilgrims in the village.
OUMPSB OF CHIU&ENJl LAKE.
A SUMMER VACATION. 1 87
It is very cool up here. The breeze rippling the
lake is really chilly. In the afternoon we walked
through the woods bordering the shore up to
Umoto, at the upper end of the lake. About five
hundred feet above the level of the main lake is a
much smaller one that discharges its overflowing
waters into it by a series of magnificent cascades.
The lowest one is called the Cascade of the Dragon's
Head. The upper one is that of the Boiling
Waters. It comes sliding down an inclined plane
of black rocks, and plunges into a gloomy pool be-
neath. The scenery here is enrapturing.
As we were dallying around these lovely places,
a heavy shower overtook us, and the path became
ankle-deep with mud. They say that it rains every
afternoon up here during the summer.
By nightfall we had waded through the last pud-
dle, and had crossed the little bridge into the vil-
lage of Umoto. Here are innumerable sulphur
springs, celebrated for medicinal qualities. During
the summer the place is filled with invalids. It is,
in fact, a village of hotels. Here I saw for the first
time that common institution of former times —
promiscuous bathing. Persons of both sexes, ut-
terly regardless of apparel and modesty, flock out
from the baths to look at the strangers.
We found considerable difficulty in finding
rooms, for the hotels were full, but finally suc-
ceeded. We soon donned Japanese garments lent
us by the landlord while ours were drying. It is
fun to watch the people from the veranda. Many
1 8 8 LE TTERS FROM J A PAN.
of them have never seen foreigners. They were
very respectful in their observations, however.
They were all engaged in amusing themselves:
some in playing chess on the verandas of the
hotels ; some in boating on the lake ; some in read-
ing aloud so as to be heard over half the village ;
some were boiling in the mineral vats in the street ;
but the majority were sipping tea, smoking, and
gossiping. This is a most popular place for soak-
ing out rheumatism and impurities. The springs
are far-famed. And a dreary place it is. Impene-
trable woods, steaming pits, and three or four hours
of rain every afternoon. Everything was saturated
with the fumes of sulphur. The bed clothing,
mats, food, and the very knife with which the
melon was cut, were thoroughly impregnated with
the disagreeable odor. The little streams pouring
into the lake were fuming with it.
In the winter time the springs of Umoto arc
deserted, all the hotels are closed, and the place is
as silent and as desolate as the grave ; while the
streets are banked with snow and the sleet drives
through the crevices of the houses. Late in the
spring the place is again opened. Only people
with considerable means can afford to come, for all
the provisions have to be brought from a distance.
Much game abounds in the fastnesses of the un-
frequented glens, where the profound silence is
only broken by the music of the takis (cascades)
and the cries of the deer and wild boar.
In future years, when the neighborhood has been
A SUMMER VACATION, 189
pruned off, and a few modem institutions for con-
venience established, the place will doubtless be-
come a fashionable and elegant resort.
/uiy 31. — We bade farewell to Umoto. The
landlord escorted us to the bridge and said good-
bye. Returned to Nikko.
Aug. I. — Spend in writing up my journal and in
revisiting the shrines.
Aug. 2. — Stroll up the valley and call on several
of the Tokio folks who are spending the summer
here. They have rented a house for the season.
We have an animated discussion over the Presiden-
tial election.
Aug. 3. — Visit a number of other friends who are
scattered through the village. Some have brought
their families and servants and have rented houses.
Aug. 4. — Having visited the main points of in-
terest, and, intending to visit Nagasaki this vaca-
tion, I start back for Tokio.
Aug, 5. — Spend on the road.
Aug. 6. — Reached Tokio about 6 P.M. We
were so dusty and tlirty that we went sneaking
through all the back streets so as to avoid meeting
any acquaintances. Shall start for Nagasaki to-
morrow. Jack is going to Hakon^.
Aug. 7. — Went down to Yokohama and procured
my ticket. Under the P. M. S. S. Co. it would
have cost a hundred dollars to go and return from
Nagasaki. But under the Mitsu-Bishi Company I
can go and return for thirty-six dollars. This com-
pany has bought out the Pacific Mail on this line.
190 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
It bids fair in a few years to be the great maritime
power of Asia.
Aug, 8. — Started this afternoon for Nagasaki
Fine sail down the bay.
Aug. 9. — We are steaming along finely. The
coast is only a few miles to larboard. Late in the
afternoon we saw a distant waterfall in the province
of Kii. It is said to be about five hundred feet
high. It must be very fine, for we can see it at a
distance of twenty miles. Shall visit it the first
chance I can get. We have a great number of pas-
sengers aboard. In the steerage there must be five
or six hundred ; in our after-cabin there must be at
least a hundred. Two-thirds of these saloon pas-
sengers are Japanese. They appear to enjoy for-
eign travel and food immensely. Some of them
speak English and arc very sociable. All the offi-
cers of these steamers are foreigners. The sailors
are natives.
Aug. 10. — Arrived at Kob6 at daylight. It is
situated near the entrance of the Inland Sea. Re-
specting its commercial prospects, it has seen its
best days as regards Europeans ; but it will see
better days as regards the natives. When the port
was opened eight years ago, European merchants
came in with a rush. They were going to coin
money without stint ; and a good many, no doubt,
did so, and they lost it again. The place was
simply overdone, and the native merchants soon
began to take a large portion of the business. The
European population of Kob^ at present is about
A SUMMER VACATION. I9I
two hundred, and this number will probably grow
less as time rolls on. The Japanese population, how-
ever, has rapidly increased, and in a few years will
number over four hundred thousand. This place
is a center of trade. The steamers from China and
the Inland Sea stop here, and the produce from
Osaca, Kioto, and the central provinces is sent
here for shipment. The climate is almost perfect.
Aug, II. — We started down the Inland Sea.
This is one of the lovely spots of earth. Three
thousand little islands are strewn broadcast through
a narrow channel. Shall not attempt to describe
it. It takes about a day to steam through it, and
it is a trip never to be forgotten. Many of the is-
lands are under high cultivation. The villages on
some of them arc extremely picturesque. In future
years, when wealth has rolled into the country,
these islets will make magnificent places for villas.
Aug. 12. — We passed Shimonosek6, the far-
famed Shimonosek^ of diplomacy. It guards the
western entrance to the Inland Sea. When prop-
erly fortified, it will be as formidable as Sebasto-
pol. The situation is lovely.
Aug. 13. — Arrived at Nagasaki last night.
It is a singular fact that persons who have had
only a glimpse of a place can usually tell a vastly
more entertaining story about it than can the
oldest inhabitant. I believe no less than a dozen
writers have remarked that Nagasaki is very pretty.
I make the same remark. An equal number have
advanced the indisputable proposition that it is en-
192 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
circled by most picturesque hills, and has a most
lovely harbor. All true, every word of it. And,
moreover, the vegetation on the surrounding hills
is heavy and almost tropical. The climate differs
much from that of Tokio. The winter is very
mild ; the spring is lovely ; the summer is hot ; and
the autumn is equal to what we have in Tokio. I
am going ashore to find the house of Mr. D., my
missionary friend, who has kindly invited me to
stop with him during my stay here.
Aug. 14. — Spent in " doing up" the place. Trade
here is very brisk. The business is mostly in the
.hands of Japanese and Chinamen. There are but
few foreign merchants ; and, as in the other Treaty
Ports, there is but little chance of their increasing.
The products of this port much resemble those
of the other ports, with the exception of tortoise-
shell work, which may be considered a specialty of
the place.
The native character is rather blunt. The people
lack the extreme politeness of the Japanese in
general. Centuries of commerce with the Chinese,
the Portuguese, and the Dutch, have tended to
make them brusque in their manners.
The foreign community is smaller than that of
Kobe. It is so limited that considerable freedom
of social intercourse exists. In Yokohama there is
an upper circle arranged on the decimal scale. A
clerk, a storekeeper, or anybody in the lower paths
of mercantile occupation, is pronounced unclean
and unfit to bask in the same sunshine, or breathe
A SUMMER VACATION, 1 93
the same atmosphere inhaled by beatified snobs,
who are not above occasional sprees down to Kana-
gawa. Social life in Nagasaki is apt to become
rather monotonous after a year or so. The arrival
of the steamers and an occasional party help some-
what to enliven things. Boating, canoeing, and
swimming are the favorite pastimes. The hilly
nature of the country spoils driving and riding.
An occasional regatta is the chief recreation of the
amateur oarsmen. One lately came off between
Shanghai, Kob6, and Nagasaki. Shanghai came
prepared to row, to conquer, and to brag. But
the other crews also displayed a remarkable pro-
clivity for rowing. One of them conquered, and
the other did an amount of bragging that must
have shocked the vanquished.
Aug, 15. — We took a boat and went down to
Pappenberg. Those who doubt the capacity of
the natives to be sincerely converted to Christi-
anity will find it interesting to visit the cliff on this
little island, where, centuries ago, hundreds of mar-
tyrs were flung upon the rocks beneath. This is a
famous place for picnics.
In going around the harbor, it is interesting to
notice the ruins of the many batteries that formerly
swept the waters of the bay. Each promontory,
each commanding bluff — even the melancholy crest
of Pappenberg itself — give abundant evidence of
the solicitude of the government to discourage for-
eign intrusion and a reoccurrence of the bloody
scenes that seem to have accompanied Romanism
13
194 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
into all lands. This country would have been civil-
ized by this time had the meddling monks ab-
stained from dabbling in State affairs.
Aug. 1 6. — We went down to the coal mines in
Takashima, a small island at the entrance of the
harbor. The supervisors arc Europeans. The
place is worked by a joint company of natives and
foreign merchants. It pays well. At present they
are flooding it. It took fire in some unknown
manner some months ago, which could not be put
under by ordinary methods. It is supposed that
the earthquakes created sufficient friction to cause
combustion in some of the obscure strata, and that
it had been smoldering for months, for a strong
odor of gas had been noticed for many weeks. On
this occasion the native workmen displayed admir-
able pluck. They crept up as close as possible to
the fire, and held their ground until the hose drop-
ped from their hands and they were dragged away
insensible. On resuscitating, they would insist on
returning to their posts.
Aug. i8. — We made an excursion over the hills.
Country lovely. The natives have some excuse for
calling this the land of the gods.
Aug. 19. — Played croquet. Ate water-melons.
Drank lemonade. Very hot. No breeze. Hills
cut off the sea air. Nagasaki is built on the wrong
side of the bay.
Aug, 20. — Began to think about returning to
Tokio.
Aug. 21. — Continued thinking.
A SUMMER VACATION, 1 95
Aug. 22. — Decided to start.
Aug. 23. — Started.
And now I must shut up my journal. I have
given you in this letter a specimen of our methods
of spending vacations and keeping journals.
Don't criticise severely. Remember everything
is strictly cntrc nous. In traveling, I can assure you
it is a most wretched bore to make daily entries.
Japanese houses never have tables. I lie flat on
the floor when I write.
I am very glad to see that Columbia has won the
inter-collegiate boat-race. Harvard seems to have
hard luck. I don't wonder at her desiring close
communion races with Yale. She is doubtless tired
of getting annually thrashed by " oncJtoss colleges."
Keep me posted on all home news.
Truly yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
LETTER XII.
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN.
TOKIO, May l8, 1876.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
I have been much interested in the missionary
question lately. Many of my most intimate ac-
quaintances being missionaries, I have been fa-
vored with an excellent opportunity for obtaining
a close insight of all their labors. Knowing that
you feel interested in everything pertaining to the
present condition of Japan, I will now give you the
results of my observations respecting this highly
prominent factor in its civilization.
The evangelizing of this country may be said to
have been begun by the Jesuits three hundred
years ago. But properly speaking, the mission
work in Japan has sprung up within twenty years.
Nay, accurately speaking, earnest, thoroughly or-
ganized, and efficient work has hardly been in
operation more than six years. And its growth
during this period has been really wonderful, when
we consider what it has had to contend with.
The first Protestant missionaries came to Japan
about eighteen years ago. For the first ten years
their force was very small, and was limited to
pi?;
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 1 97
Yokohama and Nagasaki. The early comers, as a
matter of course, had to spend most of their time
in making dictionaries, translating catechisms and
doctrinal literature, and in trying to get a clear
comprehension of the new language — a language
that is difficult to master even under the most
favorable circumstances. The times were also very
unfavorable for their operations, as the natives
were yet bitter in their hate toward Roman
Catholicism.
In 1867, however, this feeble force began to in-
crease, and the natives, beginning to discriminate
between Romanists and Protestants, became more
disposed to listen. In 1870, the Imperial Revolu-
tion being ended, the work became firmly rooted,
and spread rapidly. New missions were estab-
lished at Kob6 and Osaca, and those at Yokohama
and Nagasaki were reinforced. But it was reserved
for the year 1873 to witness the grand influx of all
denominations, for the Presbyterians and Dutch
Reformed were the pioneers.
This year forms an epoch in the mission history
of Japan. New stations were established at Hako-
date, in Yesso, in Niigata on the west coast, and in
Tokio, just then thrown open to foreigners. And
recently missionaries have been employed to teach
English in the interior, with the understanding that
they may teach Christianity outside of school
hours to all those disposed to listen. So that all of
the empire may be said to be embraced within the
scope of mission work.
198 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Of course the force in each place is very limited.
Hakodate has but two families; Niigata, two;
Hirosaki, one ; Nagasaki, three ; Kobe, five or six;
Kioto, three ; Osaca, four : and Tokio and Yoko-
hama form the great centers, as a matter of course.
In each station the families are located in comfort-
able but not expensive houses, built upon Eu-
ropean plans ; and in each, the general plan of
carrying on the work by preaching and teaching
is the same.
Beginning with Tokio, we find here about fifteen
families, besides an almost equal number of single
workers of both sexes. In this number I have not
included the Roman Catholics; I would guess their
force at about ten. They are indefatigable work-
ers, but I do not think they will ever be very
popular, because of their previous history. Nor
have I included the small body of Greek priests
connected with the Russian Legation.
Almost every Protestant sect is here represented.
We find Methodists, Canadian Wesleyans, Ameri-
can and Scotch Presbyterians, Congregationalists,
Baptists, and American and English Episcopalians,
all working harmoniously and independently. It
has been calculated that two thousand people hear
the Gospel every Sunday in Tokio. Places for
Christian worship are scattered all over the city.
There are three chapels in the foreign concession,
and an elaborate Greek church on Suruga Dai. Here
there is preaching on Sunday. Then three or four
times during the week services are held in rooms
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 1 99
rented in various parts of the city, when the Script-
ures are freely discussed and distributed, and the
superiority of Christ's teachings held forth. It
is the policy of the missionaries to avoid ridicul-
ing or abusing the pagan forms of worship as much
as possible. In addition to this, many young
Japanese go to the missionaries to learn English,
and, of course, receive much Scriptural instruction
with it. There is also a fine mission hospital, under
the able and energetic management of Dr. Faulds
of Scotland, and the ladies have erected two
large and well conducted female academies for
educating Japanese girls. In addition to all this,
the zealous missionaries take turns in preaching to
the English-speaking residents every Sunday morn-
ing, and it is to be hoped that this will form a per-
manent feature of their work here ; for an able ex-
position of the truth certainly benefits the com-
munity by creating a healthy moral tone on topics
common in pagan countries.
Nor is the work confined to Tokio. The mem-
bers of the various missions travel off into the
suburbs, into the distant villages, and even beyond
the mountains, preaching and giving instruction in
hotels, in private houses whose masters have invited
in their friends to hear the mysteries of the foreign
religion, and to the folks at the wayside inns.
In Yokohama the work is yet more extensive.
There are at least twenty families, with fully an
equal number of co-operative single workers. In
addition to abundant teaching and preaching, much
200 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
good is accomplished by a well organized medical
dispensary. There are also a number of seminaries
and foundh'ng asylums. In no part of Japan is
there such an abundant distribution of religious
literature. In various ways, at least three thou-
sand people must hear the truth every week.
Places for preaching and instruction are rented in
many of the villages surrounding Yokohama, and
there are places in the country where weekly or
monthly visits are paid. And occasionally a Japan-
ese from the far interior will request a missionary to
accompany him to his native village among the
mountains to expound the Scriptures to his friends,
who are too poor to come to Yokohama. Much
good seed is thus cast. When the missionary reaches
the village, he puts up at a hotel. He then informs
the landlord that he wishes to preach in his lower
room. Permission is generally easily obtained. The
shojees arc then removed, thus throwing all the rooms
into one. The talking then begins in a conversational
way, and the crowd begins to gather until the
streets and yard arc packed with listeners. The
exhort er then steps out on the veranda and preaches
to a respectful gathering for a couple of hours at a
time. The people are champion listeners. They
wear an ordinary man out. They are insatiate.
They come three or four times a day urging a con-
tinuance of the speech. I knew one missionary
who began at four o'clock in the afternoon, and
when he was exhausted his native helpers carried
on the exhortation until nine o'clock at night. Of
MISSIONARY WORK- IN JAPAN. 20I
course sermonizing is not resorted to. Simply the
barest recital of the life, the work, and the agony
of our Redeemer seems to chain their attention.
The people then disperse. Very few of them, per-
haps, will be baptized. But curiosity has been
awakened to know about this extraordinary relig-
ion ; books are bought ; and when the missionary
makes his next visit, he will find a number of
earnest inquirers after the truth. The good that
will result from this kind of circuit work is incalcul-
able.
Nor are the missionaries in Yokohama negligent
of their own countrymen. Through their influence,
a temperance hall and reading-room have been es-
tablished. They preach on Sunday in English at
the church in the Settlement, and they are inter-
ested in other good works. In the other Treaty
Ports the missionary operations are of a similar
character, but are on a more limited scale, owing
to the smallness of the forces. Each Treaty Port
has become a center from which radiates Christian
influence.
Of course the direct fruit of this labor is com-
paratively small. The actual number of converts
to the Protestant faith is but one thousand ; but
the number of inquirers and listeners much exceeds
this. And the good that has been done and will
yet be done by these devoted men and women will
never appear in figures, — nor can it.
I can assure you that the lot of the missionary
in Japan is by no means an enviable one. In the
202 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
first place, while the native is an incomparable lis-
tener, yet he is possessed of such an amount of good-
natured indifference on religious subjects that it if
very difficult to get him thoroughly in earnest.
The people are usually fickle and capricious. The
samurai laugh at Buddhism and its gross supersti-
tions. They readily admit that Bible morality is
perfect and far superior to their own teachings.
But they do not like to put it into practice because
it interferes with sensual pleasures. They, like
many of our own people, do not object to contem-
plating Christianity from a purely theoretical stand-
point, but they cannot endure a practical illustra-
tion thereof. They handle religious topics with an
easy-going, slip-shod spirit, quite inconsistent with
the ideas of thorough-going Westerners. Intense
and sincere earnestness on spiritual matters is cer-
tainly not one of their characteristics. Although
frequently childishly superstitious, yet they pos-
sess a strong natural tendency toward atheism.
Charmed with the novelty of the new religion,
affected with the unselfish life and the tragical
death of our Redeemer, cordially admitting the
matchless purity of his precepts, yet they are indis-
posed to adopt what appears to them to be a severe
and rigorous code of morality. The theoretical
*^ ought'' pleases their fancy, but the practical
" must " lengthens the visage and elicits the request
to be excused. They do not like to commit them-
selves to a regular and strict course of definite ac-
tion on such subjects.
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 203
Their love of novelty is another serious obstacle
to thorough and effective missionary work. They
delight to remodel and tamper with whatever falls
into their hands. This develops itself into a re-
markable fondness for modifying religious creeds
to suit their own views. As they have modified
Buddhism, as they have rendered their own lan-
guage and literature an inextricable muddle by re-
peated innovations, so would they tamper with the
Bible and its doctrines. It is really bewildering to
consider the number of amendments that the native
intellect could suggest to the Ten Commandments.
In the first place, it would ease up somewhat the
strictures on carnal pleasures. In the second place,
while freely admitting the general principle that
truth is a jewel, it would modestly intimate that
an awkward statement of facts should always be
avoided; and that the capacity to "take in" a
brother man, instead of arguing moral degenera-
tion, rather denoted mental acumen of a high phil-
osophic order. In the third place, the Sabbath
should be a jolly good holiday. Then they would
indorse, without amendment, the commandments
respecting idolatry, profanity, theft, homicide, and
filial respect. The tenth commandment would be
considered as a moral curiosity, theoretically prac-
ticable, but entirely too high-flown for human nat-
ure. The eleventh commandment, whereon hang
the law and the prophets, would be left to individual
discretion ; coupled, however, with the suggestion
that should a neighbor chance to be too intense for
204 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the locality, the combined community should adopt
measures for rendering the premises too hot for his
comfortable sojourn thereon. Thus would there
be a happy amalgamation of Buddhism, Shintoism,
Confucianism, and Christianity, — an amalgamation,
in fact, that would suit the pagans of all lands, —
civilized or otherwise.
Hut it is not from the natives that the mission-
aries have to meet their greatest discouragements.
It may seem strange to you, but all the persecution
they are ever called on to endure comes from the
foreign community. They are hounded by the
press and by social scandal to an extent absolutely
libelous. They arc the conventional target for in-
sulting editorial wit and comment. Should one of
their number chance to be indiscreet, this is the
signal for a cowardly attack upon the entire body
of this most refined and respectable portion of our
community.
I know of no subject connected with our social
cosmos which the people here seem to feel them-
selves more competent to discuss.' Now, if a per-
son not familiar with law or seamanship were to
attempt to instruct us upon those subjects, he
might find himself the subject of considerable
pointed advice from legal gentlemen and weather-
beaten skippers. But lawyers, merchants, captains,
editors, under-strappers in the Hongs, — men who
have never read a missionary journal, or have never
had ten minutes' conversation with a missionary,
and who know absolutely nothing about their
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN, 205
operations, — discuss this missionary question with
great warmth and with the most profound and
complacent stupidity. They seem to assume that,
because a man has Hved in Japan, he knows all
about missionaries ! Because a man runs a tea firm
on Water Street, and has never attended a native
service, he is, therefore, competent to pronounce
evangelization a failure ! Because a seaman drops
into port about four times a year, has never seen a
native chapel, and confines his investigations en-
tirely to Kanagawa, he is able to pour into the ears
of passengers stories about missionary shiftlessness
and idleness!
The cause of all this hostility is easy to see. The
presence of missionaries is a continued rebuke to
the greater portion of the foreign community, who
are leading lives they would not think of leading
at home. The natives are soon taught that these
foreigners arc living beneath their duties and privi-
leges. They soon learn to point this fact with cut-
ting and contemptuous observations, which gall the
recipients thereof exceedingly. They naturally say
that the missionaries must be of a higher caste.
And they soon begin to draw a line between the
two portions of the community; one portion is
bent on gain, it is selfish and grasping, it abuses its
servants, deals harshly with the natives, and is
licentious ; the other portion acts justly toward all,
so that servants are anxious to secure them as mas-
ters, and the merchants are always on the qui vive
to open accounts with them. They learn the Ian-
206 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
guagc accurately and elegantly, and instruct the
people carefully and thoroughly, and the people
soon begin to love and respect them.
It seems to be a universal feature of human nat-
ure that conscious inferiority excites envy and
hate. This is manifested prominently here. This
bitter spirit, however, is slowly disappearing; at
least it docs not strive to make itself so conspicuous
as it did four years ago. You must not infer that
the missionaries have no friends at all in the foreign
community, for there are a few who do sympathize
with them, and fully appreciate the difficulties
under which they labor.
Then, again, our missionary friends frequently find
themselves annoyed by their well-wishers — people
who have abundance of advice to offer respecting
the carrying on of the work. Some people have
such absurd notions on this subject both here and
at home ! One advises all missionaries to live in
native style. One wants them to farm in civilized
style, and thus impress the people with the su-
periority of our machinery. Some of them are
surprised if one happens to return, after an absence
of several years, with his complexion still fair, his
manners still civilized, his tongue still able to articu-
late the words of his native language, and his hair
still disposed to part on one side and not possessed
with an irresistible inclination to wriggle down over
his shoulders in a pig-tail. And should one return
after an absence of twenty-five years and exhibit no
outlandish manners, still prefer a roof and bed to a
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 207
tent and mat, exhibit no ravenous appetite for
rats, be able to tic his cravat and to put his shirt
on beneath his vest, and still be able to preach
without mixing in heathenish quotations from
Confucius, there will be found those who will be
smitten with incredulity, and will express serious
doubts as to the ultimate evangelization of the
heathens. A friend of mine told me the following
story, which is certainly characteristic : A returned
missionary was invited to dine with one of the
" pillars " of the Church. While said " pillar " was
pompously carving a leg of mutton, he patroniz-
ingly condescended to ask a few questions about
apostolic diet in pagan lands. " I presume, sir,
that in the distant realms of barbarism and med-
iaeval obscurity from which you have so lately
emerged, that the article of food now before us is
unheard of?*' ** By no means," was the reply.
" We occasionally have a joint of it for variety."
The " pillar " dropped his knife and fork and sat
back aghast. " What ! A missionary eating mut-
ton! And we only affording it twice a week!
Great heavens ! I'll never give another cent to the
cause as long as I live ! "
Numberless are the objections raised against the
evangelization of the heathens. In the first place
we are met by the hackneyed question, " Why
don't you keep your clergy at home to labor among
their own degraded countrymen, and not be send-
ing them off to waste their labors in foreign lands?"
For two very substantial reasons, my friends. You
208 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
already have enough churches and preachers at
home to dispense the truth to every man, woman
and child disposed to listen ; and if you were to
double the force at home, I seriously doubt wheth-
er the results would be proportionately greater.
Those who will not be reached now, will not be
reached if a delegation of a dozen clergymen were
to wait upon each individual of them. Therefore,
let this portion of our civilized countrymen, who
are too philosophical to be affected by a " Jewish
myth," not act out the principle of the dog in the
manger by keeping the truth from the Gentiles
while ignoring it themselves.
In the second place, \\\s- nationalizing and local-
izing of Christianity is directly opposed to the
genius of the Gospels. This course would be
human and selfish. Christianity is divine, and is
intended to conquer our selfishness. All the woes
of humanity, with but few exceptions, spring from
selfishness. Eliminate selfishness from our nature
and you will eliminate sorrow and misery to a large
extent from the list of human woes. The eleventh
commandment is a direct and deadly thrust at
human selfishness. The Jews rejected this com-
mandment with Christ. And may we not truly say
that selfishness is to-day a strong Jewish character-
istic? Against this peculiarity of our nature,
Christ was inexorable and uncompromising. His
command was " Go ye forth into all the world,"
not ** Remain forever at Jerusalem wasting breath
and exertions upon a perverse and stiff-necked
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 2O9
generation." And in parable he clearly intimates
that many must be called because so few are will-
ing to be chosen. Therefore, my friends, you who
now wish to keep Christianity at home are acting
out the same selfish principle that has been the
curse and main impediment to human progress in
all ages. No community or people can consistently
act out the teachings of Christ without making
efforts to give to others the rays of the same light.
When a community ceases to be evangelical^ it ceases
to be truly Christian.
Again, it is urged that the expense of the work
is great. Of course it is. Do you expect it to cost
little or nothing? Where, then, would the oppor-
tunity for you to show a self-sacrificing spirit come
in? I have generally found that those who are
loudest in raising this objection arc those who con-
tribute little or nothing to the cause of evangeliza-
tion. Would it not be more dignified for such to
proportion their advice to their liberality ? It is a
fact that the bulk of missionary contributions come
not from the rich and the noble, but from those in
moderate circumstances, and from the poor. If
evangelization had to wait until millionaires were
ready to furnish the funds, it would, in common
parlance, have to hang its harp up under the wil-
lows (a position in which not a few would like to
see it).
Again, it is loudly urged, the native Christians
sometimes back-slide. But back-sliding is by no
means common. And if it were, this phase of relig-
14
2 lO LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
ious experience is not unknown in our cnv?i lands
of glorious civilization and enlightenment. It is
more becoming not to advance this objection.
Again, it is urged, the native Christians are not
really and truly converted ; they are insincere; they
will not stand fast should persecution arise. Facts
prove the contrary. Let the cliff of Pappenberg,
and the crucifixions and tortures of Shimambara
testify. It is safe to say that they will stand per-
secution as well as some of our fat deacons that
take such Pharisaical satisfaction in classifying
themselves among the perfections of the nineteenth
century.
Again, it is urged that with such an outlay of
money and labor, evangelization should proceed
more rapidly. No doubt there are many who think
that more tangible results should appear.- Let us
consider some of the difficulties. Are we not too
sanguine when we expect thirty millions of people
to be acted upon in so short a space of time ? Are
not we, who so rigidly proportion results to time
and money, apt to be a little conceited about the
progress of Christianity in our own country? Let
us examine a little. Let us begin with Great Brit-
ain. There, for thirteen centuries, you have had
thousands of ministers at work. And, at the pres-
ent moment, the force at work in the shires and
cities of the United Kingdom can be numbered by
the thousands.' And what are the results? Is
Great Britain completely evangelized ? Is she
what she ought to be, after all her centuries of
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 2 1 1
Christian teaching and advantages ? By no means.
Nowhere in Japan will you find viciousness of so
vile a character as you will find in the iniquitous
dens of London, Edinburgh, Glasgow, and a few
other civilized foci.
These same remarks are applicable to America,
and to France, Spain, Italy, and Germany. Do not,
then, expect so great results from the small force
in the field. Consider, also, that they have to con-
tend with a difficult language. This language is
not well adapted to express the profound and
varied ideas of Christian theology. Terms and
forms of expression have to be almost invented in
order to present many of the ideas of the Revealed
Religion. The natives have to be taught the mean-
ing of the innovated phrases. All this, of course,
much cripples the effect of eloquence and dialectic
discourse. And, in addition to all this, the dis-
solute behavior of the foreign community terribly
injures the cause of Christianity. It is hard to
answer the frequently propounded question : " If
your religion is so very superior, why do such foul
wretches come from your country?" And the ex-
planation that they are not Christians, but sinners,
wantonly living below their duties and destined to
much severer punishment for so doing, is but half
understood by a people accustomed from earliest
time to nationalize religion, and who have no ideas
of a spiritual kingdom and of an invisible, yet real,
communion of the redeemed with Christ.
Finally, it is urged with great gusto that native
2 I 2 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Christians do not bear favorable comparison with
our Christians at home. It is triumphantly asserted
that they retam many of their heathenish propen-
sities after baptism ; that to eradicate these quali-
ties, if not an impossibility, will be the work at
least of several generations; that they do not pos-
sess the high-bred Christian sentiment of Saxons;
that a strong alloy of inherent superstition runs
through all their nature ; that their moral percep-
tions are positively obtuse when viewed from our
stand-point ; that a well-balanced, sensitive con-
science is a rare thing among them ; and that even
after years of labor but few can be considered as
examples worthy of imitation. Now just permit
us to inform you that your comparison is sophis-
tical and unfair. Is it legitimate to draw a com-
parison between the first converts of a heathen
countr}' and our carefully educated Christians who
have had every moral advantage from infancy, who
have been reared in the midst of every circum-
stance tending to promote elevation of character,
who have derived every possible benefit from cent-
uries of accumulated instruction, who do not have
to face the fierce prejudice and bitter persecution
of friends and neighbors, and who are assisted in-
tellectually and morally by many generations of
inherited tendencies? Certainly not. You should
compare them with the first converts of the Saxon
and Celtic races. We must bear in mind that the
early inhabitants of fair Albion did not become
paragons of excellence as soon as they were bap-
MISSIONARY WORK IN JAPAN. 213
tized by Saint Augustine. They retained for many
centuries their barbarous and cruel customs.
Nor can we speak in more flattering terms of
sweet Ireland. For even at this day, after centu-
ries of cultivation, but little of the fruit of Saint
Patrick can be characterized as sans pareil. And
coming down to later times, we must remember
that his most gracious Majesty, Defender of the
Faith, &c., King Henry VIII., would bear very un-
favorable comparison with modern Christians. Nor
would it be fair to cite as a specimen of modern
Christianity that bellicose queen who was accus-
tomed to slap her courtiers in the face, to lie and,
dissimulate without stint, to swear at her noble
lords " by God's blood," and to publicly interrupt
sermons by telling clergymen to " quit their un-
godly digressions.** Nay, more, it would not be
very gratifying to national pride to sit in inquisi-
torial committee on the moral tone of the entire
Elizabethan age. And, bringing the question right
home, could we candidly advise Japanese youth of
to-day to pattern their actions after the naughty
example of the future Defender of the Faith ? Ah !
My conceited scions of the Imperial race, are you
all you might be and ought to be after thirteen
centuries of Christian teaching? Be careful, then,
how you criticise the product of only seventeen
years of labor. Look to yourselves when you dog-
matically clamor that a country which, for twenty-
five centuries, has had only the dim light of natural
religion to guide it, should bring forth characters
214 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
fully competent to comprehend and practice the
precepts of our revealed religion as our most noble
Christians do.
But, incredible as it may seem, the most power-
ful auxiliary of the missionaries is the Japanese
Government. You may rest assured that the
government never dreamed of rendering any as-
sistance to the Christian faith when they began to
introduce civilization. But they are now begin-
ning to realize the fact that the foreign civilization
that they have been so carefully importing during
the past six years is the product of Christian prin-
ciples, and that by introducing our civilization they
arc introducing Christianity itself. This fact aston-
ishes them immeasurably, and it is a fact that we
ourselves do but dimly realize ; yet such is the
case.
A prominent counsellor, imported from England
by the government, said that all Japan needed was
civilization and beefsteak. The gentleman furnish-
ing this advice was an infidel, and evidently did not
realize the fact that whatever was good in the
civilization of Europe and America was based upon
Christian principles. The religion and the civiliza-
tion of a country go hand in hand. Show me the
Druidical mysteries, the fetiches of the African
savages, and I will show you a degraded civiliza-
tion. Show me the nonentities of Shintoism and
of Buddhism, and I will show a civilization charac-
terized by social and intellectual stagnation, and by
spiritual and political degradation. Show me the
MISSIONAR y WORJC IN JAPAN. 2 1 5
sensuous creed of the Turks, and I will show you
the vilest civilization of to-day. Show me the
comic mythology of the Greeks and Romans, based
upon the vagaries of childish imaginations, and I
will show you a civilization possessing many excel-
lent qualities, but uninfluenced by any deep moral
undercurrents, and characterized by selfishness and
cruelty. In short, give me the general features of
any religion, and I can show you, with reasonable
certainty, the nature of the civilization prevailing
among its votaries. These terms denote correla-
tive conditions of society. Religion is the cause,
civilization is the effect.
And the Japanese, who have been so assiduously
introducing our civilization, arc now startled with
the discovery that they have been but pioneers for
Christian missionaries. They now see that the in-
tellectual qualities, the animal passions, and the
selfish desires of nations under Christian influence,
are controlled and curbed by some moral power
that they had not noticed. And they also see that,
but for the checking force of these moral princi-
ples, the tremendous faculties of Europe and
America would be dangerous to the world. While
they have assiduously cultivated the intellectual
powers of their youth, are intensifying their appe-
tites and passions by nourishing and stimulating
food, yet they have put no guide on the road, have
put no brake on the wheels, have introduced no
moral power to restrain the undue exercise of these
mental and physical powers. They find Shintoism
2 1 6 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
and Buddhism quite powerless to do so. Nor can
the copious and bitter draughts of infidelity, al-
ready freely imbibed, accomplish this end. Nothing
under the sun but the Gospel of Christ can do it.
This fact was most whimsically acknowledged by
the Japanese when the Mitsui Bank was started in
Tokio. This is a national bank, and is backed up
with the money of the government. Young Japan-
ese had been specially educated abroad to carry on
the banking system on approved foreign principles.
They were intelligent, capable, and shrewd. They
made excellent cashiers, tellers, book-keepers, and
clerks, so far as the merely executive qualities were
concerned. They possessed every intellectual re-
(juirement necessary for carrying on a bank. But
they were too intelligent ! They were so thor-
oughly acquainted with financing that they under-
stood many little methods of deflecting cash from
the treasury into their own pockets. And there
was no power except fear that could prevent their
doing so ; and fear had but little effect, as there
was hardly any danger that the capitalists, com-
posed of effete Daimios and of government officers
unfamiliar with banking, could detect how the cash
disappeared. In this predicament, one of the bank
officers, with great candor and solicitude, came and
explained the situation to one of the missionaries.
He frankly admitted that he did not believe in any
religion whatsoever. He claimed that the Japanese
intellect was of too philosophical a nature to accept
the Jewish myth called Christianity. *' But," said
MISSIONAR Y WORK IN JAPAN. 2 I 7
he, " your religion does something that our religions
cannot do. // makes men hoficst. Now, we wish
our employes at the bank to be carefully instructed
in these principles, so that they may learn to dis-
charge their duties with scrupulous integrity."
This story is thoroughly characteristic. Fre-
quently have I met men in America who have can-
didly admitted that, though not professing Chris-
tians themselves yet they would not care to live
in communities where business was not influenced
by Christian principles, and where they could not
deal with Christian people. And if it were not for
the factor of absolute integrity that lies at the
foundation of the banking system of the nineteenth
century, where would be our immense fabric of
commercial exchange ? Were it not for the fact
that Christian sentiment had made fidelity in com-
mercial affairs to be of paramount importance, the
international transactions of the present day would,
indeed, be of a limited nature.
At one time the government insisted that Chris-
tianity should not be taught in their schools in any
shape whatsoever. They even went so far as to
insert in some of their contracts a clause to the
effect that no instruction should be given upon this
subject. Yet it is impossible to explain the senti-
ment and the illustrations of our great writers with-
out teaching much concerning Christianity. The
vast bulk of our literature is so impregnated with
Christian sentiment that it is absolutely impossible
to eliminate or to avoid it while teaching this sub-
2 1 8 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
ject. A great part of my teaching in the govern-
ment schools of Japan has been pure missionary
work. It was necessarily so. It would have been
impossible for it to have been otherwise.
But I must close this letter. I could write a
volume tracing the growth of our literature, our
social customs, and our political institutions from
the principles of the Gospels. But time forbids. I
can only state in brief my candid conclusions upon
this subject, derived from several years of close ob-
servation. I shall not attempt to argue the matter,
to quote voluminous authorities, or to make a te-
dious demonstration by clumsy logical methods.
But, in the language of Greenleaf, I will close by
saying that the truth of any hypothesis is estab-
lished by its coincidence with existing phenomena.
Yours truly,
Theopiiilus Pratt.
THE CITADEL i>K t)WARI CAsTl.E.
I Xatiz-f Photograph. )
LETTER XIII.
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN.
Kioto, Japan, August 3, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
I shall start to-morrow on a tour through the
provinces that lie north, east, and south of Kioto.
This is the classic part of Japan. Our route will
be northward across Lake Biwa into Echizen ; then,
turning to the south, we will pass through Mino,
Owari, Isc, and Kii ; and then we will cut over the
mountains in a north-westerly direction into Yama-
shiro. My traveling companion will be Mr. Yana-
gashima, one of my scholars. He is well versed in
Japanese history, and is very intelligent. I intend
to carry no provisions along. I want to try the
experiment of living for a month on Japanese diet,
and see how it works. Good night.
Aug. 4. — Left Kioto this evening at seven
o'clock, and arrived at Oatsu, on the southern end
of Lake Biwa, at ten o'clock. Distance seven miles
and a half. Scenery very mountainous. We were
stopped three times by the vigilant police. The
war makes them active. Even natives have to
carry passports. Put up at a hotel. Hotel-keepers
charge for best accommodations about sixteen cents
220 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
per day ; for inferior, they charge about twelve
cents per day. Oatsu is a town containing about
thirty thousand inhabitants.
Aug. 5. — Took one of the little steamers that
ply across the lake. The trip to the other end of
Lake Biwa is very fine. This is the largest body
of fresh water in Japan. Many of the historic
events in native history were enacted on its shores.
Many of the legends and myths that arc most
popular cluster around it. On the right is a hill
around which a gigantic centipede is said in ancient
times to have entwined itself seven times, and then
buried its head beneath the waters under the
bridge that spanned the river. On the left rises a
lofty range of mountains, where lived the famous
priest, Benk6, in his monastery. He was noted, the
tradition says, for his vast power. On one occasion
he stole a large bell and carried it off up the moun-
tains. But the unhappy bell kept saying : *' Carry
me back! Carry me back, Benke!" Night and
day it ceaselessly cried out, so that the people all
heard it. It gave him no peace until he complied
with its request. His other exploits would fill a
volume.
At four o'clock in the afternoon we reached
Shiotsu, at the extreme northern end of the lake.
Take dinner h la Japonnaise, At half-past five we
started for Hikita, some seven miles northward.
The first four miles lead through a series of rice
plateaus, picturesquely flanked by lofty hills. This
was evidently the ancient head of the lake, as the
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN, 221
pebbly nature of the ground fully attests. At the
end of the four miles we came to the boundary post
between Omi and Echizen. The scenery now be-
came grand. We descended into Echizen through
a rugged pass. Put up at a hotel.
The productions of the province of Omi are
bleached linen, tea, crape, moxUy edges for tatamis^
porcelain, pepper, velvet, silk, fish called gengoro-
funay eels, and carp. The productions of the prov-
ince of Echizen are silver, lead, copper, coal, sul-
phur, paper called hosho (the best paper in Japan,
and used in ceremonial documents), mosquito nets,
silk, trout, salmon, codfish, mulberry trees, hemp,
tea, and lacquer. The word Oifti means " near the
river." The word Echizen means "over the pass.''
Atig, 6. — Called for our bill. Here it is :
1. For night's lodging, supper and breakfast for
two, 30 cents.
2. For sugar, 2 cents.
3. For peaches, 8 cents.
Total, 40 cents.
Took jinrikshas at half-past six. Rode for five
miles through a lovely country to Tsuruga, on the
Japan Sea. The harbor is shut in by lofty moun-
tains. The place is enchanting. This is the port
that will probably be the next to be thrown open
to foreign commerce.
^^^g' 7' — Hired a boat to visit Jogo, a place
some six miles up the western side of the bay.
The boatman says that on one side of the bay the
people gain their living by hunting and farming;
222 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
on the other side they live by fishing. He also
says that the long pine beach at the extreme lower
part of the bay was made in one night. .
The temple of Jogo is beautifully located at the
base of a mountain. Within a mile of it the peo-
ple are forbidden to catch fish. Jogo is the popular
name for the Empress Jingo, who went from this port
on a raid into Corea many centuries ago. Her other
half has a temple in his honor about half a mile off.
Popular tradition says that he makes a visit to
Jingo about once a year. Beside Jingo's temple a
pretty cascade casts itself into a shaded pool. If
you bathe in this water you will be free from sick-
ness for a year — provided you have handed over to
the priest that attends the shrine the full allowance
of money. Here we found an old woman and a
maiden under the water endeavoring to obtain the
desired blessing.
We then, on our way back, visited the ubiqui-
tous shrine of Benierty picturesquely located on a
little promontory.
Then we pass a stone slab rising out of the
water; upon it is an image of Jiso, the Buddhist
priest. Those who are unable to swim are called
stone Jisos. Through its breast is a small hole.
The story goes that during a great battle fought
five hundred years ago between Nitta and Ashi-
kaga, a stray shot pierced it. The clumsy match-
locks of the thirteenth century could never have
done such execution at a distance of three miles.
The yarn is charming, nevertheless.
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 223
Aug. 8. — Have been out on a tramp through
the town of Tsuruga. We first visited the site of
the ancient castle of Nitta. It was built on a steep
cliff outside of the town. The position is very-
strong, but Ashikaga led his legions right up the
face of the hill and stormed the place. No trace of
the castle is left, but the peasants in the immediate
vicinity say, that in digging about the underbrush
on the steep hillside, they sometimes unearth
charred rice, which must be the debris of the burnt
store-houses of the ancient castle. This was the
last battle between Nitta and Ashikaga. Near this
spot is the grave of Takayoshi Shinno, a great
friend and defender of the ancient Mikados. His
melancholy fate excites pity in the breast of every
true samurai. He fought against the Imperial
enemies in Kaga, Mino, Echigo, and Echizcn. He
died prematurely, and was buried here. For cent-
uries his sepulcher was unknown, but after the
Imperial restoration the spot was discovered and
marked. Some ancient families in the vicinity
treasured up the fact and imparted it to the govern-
ment. Climbing up the path and pushing aside
the underbrush, you see merely an insignificant
bamboo fence. Upon a square wooden post is
written the name of the hero, the date when the
name was written, and a strict prohibition against
entering the inclosure.
In the afternoon we went to Matswara, beyond
the other end of the town. Here is the place where
some three hundred and seventy-five samurai were
224 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
decapitated and buried about twenty years ago.
These gentlemen were led by the Prince of Iga,
whose head also fell on this bloody occasion. They
were bitterly opposed to the introduction of for-
eigners, but the Bakufu did not sustain their views.
Then Takada, the prince, went roving with them
through the provinces trying to stir up revolution
against the Shogun. They came over the moun-
tains into Echizen. But here they were stopped
by the Kaga samurai. They delivered up their
swords and bodies to the Kaga gentlemen and
awaited the decision of the Shogun. The answer
was decapitation to a man. The spot is marked
with stone monuments.
Aug. 9. — At 10 P.M. we took the steamer that
goes fifty-five miles up the coast to Mikun^, the
sea-port of the capital of this province.
Aug. 10. — Reached Mikun^ this morning. The
population is about fifteen thousand. Tookjinrik-
sha for Fukui, twelve miles to the east. Arrived
at II A.M. Fukui is built in the center of an ex-
tensive stretch of rice-growing country. At half-
past eleven we took jinriksha for Togu, six miles
and a half to the east. The road led through rice
and hemp fields. From Togu we walked five miles
to Okubo. The road led through a pretty moun-
tainous country. Hotel passable. People kind and
attentive. Only one foreigner has ever been in the
place.
Atig. II. — Left Okubo and walked twelve miles
to Ono. Our road led through a long stretch of
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 225
lovely mountain scenery. Hemp and trees produc-
ing lacquer are extensively -cultivated. Ono is
situated in a gem of a valley. The lofty mountains
abruptly rise on all sides. The city contains about
forty-five thousand inhabitants. It is well built.
Everybody seems to be reeling silk from thousands
of cocoons. Takada, in his tramp, passed through
here, but was not very warmly received.
From Ono we continued our southerly course,
climbing a mountain covered with verdure to its
very summit. From the summit the view was su-
perb. Behind us lay Ono, the variegated fields,
the sandy streams, and the engroved villages scat-
tered through the glens. While in front of us,
down in the rugged depths of the mountains, lies a
sublime valley. A torrent pours through it. On
its further slope lies a thatched village. Surely
nothing can surpass this in beauty ! -Hunting and
fishing are good. Only two foreigners have ever
visited this section of country.
The people are painfully polite. When you
pass along the peasants remove their head-bands.
Should they chance to be driving a large ox that
compels you to step aside, they beg your pardon.
The school-boys in the thatched temples, that have
been turned into school-houses, come out and stand
before the door. Their leader then gravely steps
forth before his constituents and makes a low bow.
This expresses the sentiments of the crowd.
In this vicinity is an antiquated Shinto temple.
The people about it are greatly troubled with
15
2 26 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
wolves. One of the voracious animals destroyed a
man down in the hemp-fields last summer. Wild
boars also do much mischief by rooting in the
fields. Robbers also are a source of much annoy-
ance. At this old temple is a caged wolf of huge
dimensions, and both robbers and wild boars greatly
dread the wolf. Therefore, the people pray to the
wolf to be delivered from their enemies. They
pray that three wolves may stand guard over the
premises of each one of them. Although these
sentinel wolves have never been seen, yet the peo-
ple believe that invisible ones are actually guarding
them and exert a mysterious influence over depre-
dators.
We spent the night at Nakashima, ten miles from
Ono. Takada and his gang of ronins burnt this
place in the most brutal and unprovoked manner
during their "raid.
Aug. 12. — We left Nakashima and followed the
road through fine mountain scenery. At ten o'clock
we crossed from Echizen into Mino. We now have
wild and rugged mountains. The country is un-
cultivated and much resembles the Adirondacks.
The lofty mountains are covered to their summits
with groves of walnut, oak, chestnut, beech, and
horse-chestnut. A thick underbrush fills in all
spare ground. Wild boars and deer abound.
Here is also found the kamosishi, a kind of ibex.
Legions of monkeys run wild everywhere. They
sometimes descend into the regions of rice-fields
and make sad havoc with the crops. We made
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 227
twenty-five miles to-day ; the last ten miles were
indescribably grand ; the scenery was majestic ; the
road went around the mountain side many hundred
feet above the torrents ; sometimes it passed over
dizzy chasms ; sometimes over scaffoldings built
along the face of precipices; sometimes over frail
bridges ; and sometimes over planks that trembled
as you crossed the chasms they spanned ; the
mountains have been packed together in the closest
possible order, and they are about as steep as it is
possible for them to be without letting slide the
immense mass of vegetation that covers them. In
fact, in some places, the face of a hill has slipped
away, carrying the thundering avalanche of trees
and rocks into the torrents below. We passed two
lovely cascades. One is three hundred feet high.
In one place we had to creep along the face of a
clifl where a wrong step would probably have
plunged us down fifteen hundred feet. At one
place the ravine is spanned by a swinging bridge.
It is said the architects derived their idea of the
plan by seeing hundreds of monkeys join hands
and form a cable from side to side. Old Takada
came over the greater part of this road on horse-
back. He was eighty years old. He must have
possessed considerable vigor, for the road is really
a rough foot-path. At ten o'clock we reached
Tenjin. While Yanagashima was taking his bath,
the floor fell out of the room and precipitated him
into the yard, to the unfeigned horror of the land-
lady, who was profuse in explanations and apolo-
2 28 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
gies. He, however, resumed his ablutions undis-
mayed. Tired ? Rather. But he is developing
into a first-rate walker.
Aug. 13. — We made thirty-five miles to-day.
In the morning we again passed through some
magnificent scenery. The rocks indicate the pres-
ence of iron and coal. The geology of the coun-
try is very interesting. There has been much
erosion and drift. In one place the water has worn
for itself a deep channel through the rocks. By
midday we struck the foot-hills, and were again in
the region of pine trees. We passed extensive
fields of taro, beans, millet, and rice. We found
the people very inquisitive, but respectful. By
three o'clock we reached Inozoka. From this point
we took jinrikshas to Yorotaki, a pretty cascade
about one hundred and twenty-five feet high. It
is a famous resort for picnic parties. It is beauti-
fully located in a glen filled with trees. The spark-
ling spray combines beautifully with the sunlight
and the shadows.
Aug. 14. — From Yorotaki we went through a
long stretch of level country to Gi-Fu, the capital
of Mino. It is in a favorable location. Place is
well built. The productions of the province of
Mino are silver, copper, lead, wood for carving and
engraving, melons, persimmons, tea, hemp, pepper,
rice-beer, crape, cloth, porcelain, carp, trout.
Aug. 15. — Spent in Nagoya, in Owari. This is
one of the five great cities of Japan. Its castle
is one of the finest. Upon its Tenshiu (citadel)
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 229
were formely two immense fishes plated with pure
gold. They adorned the gable ends, and for miles
you could catch their glitter. We spent a day in
inspecting the castle and Tenshiu. This Tenshiu
rises some three hundred and fifty feet from the
waters of the moat. It is five stories high. In
the lowermost story you can place two thousand
soldiers. The timbers used in its construction are
most massive. From the summit your eye takes
in the waters of Owari Bay, the rice-fields of Owari
Province, and the distant mountains of Shinano
and Mino. From this lofty place the movements
of an enemy can be accurately inspected miles
away. This Tenshiu was almost impregnable
against feudal assaults, but against modern weap-
ons it would be useless. It would present a splen-
did target for artillery practice.
The general features of this castle much resemble
that of Hirosaki. It is, however, more extensive.
It was one of the strongest outposts of the Toku-
gawas. Being only three days journey from Kioto,
it was most conveniently situated for watching
Yamashiro and the central Daimiatcs.
Nagoya is the great center of inland commerce.
The productions of Owari Province, of which it is
the capital, are crystals, agate, silk, cotton, earthen-
ware, ironware, and fans. Porcelain, of course,
forms a vast article of manufacture. The city is
built on a little rising ground that gently slopes
down to Owari Bay, a few miles off.
Aug. 16 — To-day we left Nagoya and continued
230 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
our journey due southward into Is^, the long, narrow
province that borders Owari Bay on the west.
This is one of the oldest portions of Japan. Our
road is level, and we travel by jinriksha entirely.
Two-thirds of Is6 is a rice-field. The mountains
on the west separate it from Iga, the track of
whose prince we have been tracing. We covered
thirty-five miles to-day. Spent the night at Kambe.
The productions of Is^ are tea, oil, wax, cotton,
dyed paper, crabs, clams, lacquerware, tobacco,
garden seeds, hydrangeas, copper, coal, and porce-
lain called bankoyaki. The productions of the ad-
joining Province of Iga are coal, sulphur, sand for
polishing, and earthenware called Iga-yaki.
Aug. 17. — We covered thirty-five miles to-day.
We spent the night at Yamada (mountain-field).
In this vicinity are the shrines of Is6. They are
ranked among the oldest temples in Japan. The
place is about five miles from Futami, where the
sun is said to have first risen between two rocks
that rise from the sea. Around Is6 cluster all the
myths and legends of Shintoism, the primitive re-
ligion of Japan. This religion was a pastoral re-
ligion. The aboriginal hunters and tillers of the
soil offered up the fruits of their toil to the un-
known powers that controlled nature. The early
temples were probably like wigwams, built of poles
crossed at the top and covered with skins or thatch.
Then more elaborate structures were built, but the
original form was retained, and even to-day you
find the roofs of all Shinto temples disfigured with
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 23 1
the projecting rafters that cross each other like the
original poles twenty-five hundred years ago. And
the heavy beams that resemble cannons laid across
the ridge pole probably represent the logs that
weighted down the thatched roof of some primeval
shrine. Into this religion has become welded the
doctrine of the divinity of the Mikado. Pure
Shintoism is not idolatry. It was the worship of
the Invisible by a simple pastoral community.
It had no code of morality, no literature ex-
pounding doctrines relating to pure life, and no
teachings that can compare with the teachings of
other great religions. All its temples are built in a
style of severe simplicity. No idols are to be
found in any of their temples. The only ornament
is an enshrined steel mirror about a foot in diame-
ter. Before this they bow and pray : " as the mir-
ror reflects our faces, so may the Invisible reflect
upon our minds our sins and duties." Shintoism is
doubtless a vast improvement on some forms of
idolatry to be met with in Asia. But its great
weakness is, that while it recognizes the fact that
men should be good, it utterly neglects to tell them
how to be good. It fails to grive a single command-
ment or evolve a solitary principle of morality. It
is utterly inefficient to raise men even so high as
Buddhism has done. If you believe the Mikado to
be of divine descent and obey him, you can not fail
to be a good Shintoist. It must always fail as a
religion. The experience of four thousand years
has shown that men need very minute and careful
232 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
instructions in the very difficult carrying out of so
very simple a thing as being good.
The temples of Ise are prettily located in
spacious grounds, but in themselves they are not
remarkable for architectural beauty. The present
buildings have stood about a century.
A lengthy description of these shrines would
take us much beyond the limits of our letter. For
further information in regard to Shintoism, I refer
you to the paper on the ** Revival of Pure Shinto,"
by Mr. Satow, in the Asiatic Reports for 1874 or
1875.
Aug. 18. — We continued our southerly course.
We intend to visit the province of Kii and the cas-
cade of Natchi, near its southern part. This is the
cascade that steamers coming along the coast can
see at a great distance. This section of the country
has never been explored by foreigners.
After going ten miles we had to leave our
jinrikshas and walk. The country was very pretty
and hilly. Owing to the uncertainty of the dis-
tance between the last two towns, I am unable to
say how much I walked to-day. Each traveler we
met gave a different figure of the distance. Very
few people anyway will give the same answer to
the query as to how great the distance is. But the
elasticity of this afternoon's walk ranged all the
scale between four and fifteen miles.
Atig. 19. — Walked seventeen miles to Nagashima.
Then we walked over the mountains to a deep in-
let, and took a boat from Furusatto to Shirora.
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 233
Distance, six miles. Then we walked a mile and a
half over the hills and struck another inlet. Took
boat again for Owashi. Distance, seven miles.
Our entire journey to-day has been along the sea
coast. On the right hand, the lofty mountains rise
in indescribable grandeur. Panthers, deer, and wild
boars abound in the valleys. The entire southern
and eastern portions of this province are exceed-
ingly mountainous. As the natives say, the moun-
tains are literally placed side by side. In all eligible
localities, the hamlets are nestled. This province
produces crude camphor, tobacco, cotton, pepper,
lime, candle-wax, umbrellas, round fans, little egg-
shaped oranges, and lacquerware. The fishermen
along the coast also bring in an occasional whale,
which Yanagashima classes among the produc-
tions.
Aug, 20. — Left Owashi and walked seven miles
over very steep mountains. Striking another inlet,
we again took boat some five miles. These inlets
are lovely. They are full of fish. Fishing-boats
are scattered everywhere. Some are gliding in
from the Pacific well freighted with spoil. Some
are in the deep shadows of the headlands. When
the fish will not bite, the anglers beat the water
with a switch, so that the denizens of the deep may
fancy it is raining. Should they then refuse to
bite, they are well scolded.
We then walked thirteen miles to Kinomoto.
The walk was severe. The population of this
place is four thousand. We hadn't been five
234 ^^ TTERS FROM JAPAN.
minutes in the hotel before two policemen bounced
in for our passports.
What interested me most to-day was the univer-
sal habit of smoking cigars. Even the women and
children smoked. They take a camelia leaf and
roll it into a cornucopia. This they fill with to-
bacco, and go puffing along as if they had tin fun-
nels in their mouths. Bundles of camelia leaves
are sold all along the roadside for two mills per
bundle. I have never seen this anywhere else in
Japan.
The people here are hearty and healthy. Their
noses are really Jewish in shape. In these moun-
tains you will find the people as they have been for
two thousand years. The place is out of the way.
Foreign elements have never mixed in. Here you
find the pure Japanese race. The fleets of Javanese
junks that probably drifted up here on the Black
Stream during the past centuries would find this
promontory convenient for landing. When the pop-
ulation increased, it could pass over the mountains
into Owari, Is^, and Yamashiro, and mix with the
Ainos. But it offered no inducement with its wild
mountains for immigration in return. The people
are certainly an improvement on the Japanese I
have hitherto met. The corruptions of feudalism
also had less scope here among the rugged cliffs.
And so the people of these mountains are about
the same as they have been for many centuries.
The climate along the coast is very delightful at all
seasons.
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 235
Aug, 21. — Left Kinnemoto and went twelve miles
by jinriksha along the sea shore. The road led
through pine groves, across hills, and through
much varied and beautiful scenery. Then took
kago at Atawa and went fourteen miles to Hama-
no-mia (shore temple). This place is within three
miles of Natchi-no-taki. We spent the night at a
Buddhist temple that has been turned into a hotel.
Since the Revolution, this sect has become very
much impoverished. Many of the monasteries
have fallen into decay. We found two very valu-
able relics at this place. One was a piece of cam-
phor wood with an inscription upon it. The abbot
said that it was thirteen hundred years old. We
wanted to buy it, but he said money was no induce-
ment to part with it. Another relic was a little bell
heavily alloyed with gold. It produced a very sweet
note. This was a thousand years old. It was well
authenticated. It had been handed down for fifty
generations from abbot to abbot. It was brought
from China by the priest Ji-kaku Daishi. This
relic he was induced to part with for a pecuniary
consideration.
Aug, 22. — Arrived at the falls of Natchi. It is
about three miles back from the sea-coast. It is
nearly five hundred feet high. Its source is a
mountain stream that comes from the range of
Natchi-san. The scenery surrounding it is very
wild and exceedingly grand. Within a radius of a
few miles are other cascades numbering, according
to native estimates, forty-eight. None of them,
236 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
however, are more than half the size of this one.
At its base are many shrines and tea booths for the
pilgrims that flock hither every summer. On one
or two occasions boats from passing steamers have
landed crews to examine the falls. The people
living in the vicinity are very respectful, and take
ver}' little notice of strangers. There are no regu-
lar hotels in the vicinity. The well-to-do people,
living in the valley and on the steep mountain side,
offer the hospitality of their roofs to visitors.
When crowds are not pressing, they take turns in
acting the host. We were referred well up the
mountain side to a house situated on a bold crag
overlooking the valley and the falls. So lovely was
the place that we decided to stay here a couple of
days and enjoy the scenery.
Aug, 23. — Spent in examining the falls and in
visiting some of the old temples. Our host showed
us some letters that had been written by some
princes in the time of Yoritomo, nearly eight hun-
dred years ago. Yanagashima had some difficulty in
reading them, as the characters dififered somewhat
from the modern characters. One letter was from
a feudal lord to his treasurer, ordering him to pre-
sent a suitable gift to a certain samurai oi another
clan who had respectfully descended from his horse
when his lordship came down the road. Another
letter spoke about the widening of the castle moat
and the securing of workmen for the task. These
letters would be very interesting to any one desir-
ing to write up a history of old times. In this
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 237
vicinity are many such ancient documents. This
whole promontory would be a fine field for anti-
quarians.
Aug. 24. — I must take it easy! I begin to find
that Japanese diet is not quite so invigorating
as our own. My eyes begin to be weak. The
original aversion that I had for rice has disap-
peared. I actually relish it as the hostess dips it
out of the steaming tub. Rice tastes better when
eaten with chop-sticks. It should be eaten piping
hot. If the Japanese were to use a little more
variety in their cooking it would suit my taste
more. Almost everything is boiled. They do not
seem to know much about roasting and baking.
Rice is used at every meal. The side dishes are
varied. The landlady comes in regularly and takes
our orders. Shall it be trout, or beans, or pickled
radish ? Or perhaps some shrimps would be pre-
ferred ? When one gets accustomed to these
dishes, he finds some of them very nice. But a
person with a delicate taste would be a long time
in getting accustomed to them. Japanese diet is
certainly weak when compared with our own. You
do not store up a reserve force of vitality when liv-
ing on it. You can do just about so much work
every day, but when you attempt to do more than
your regular amount you find it very wearing. A
jinriksha man will do splendid work for a couple of
days, but if you keep him at it he breaks down.
Many of these men die from heart disease every
year.
238 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
Aug, 25. — Walked over the mountains some
twenty miles and reached Hongu. The country is
exceedingly rugged. Our course is now north-east
to Coyasan and Osaca. The oldest temples in
Japan are here. They antedate the shrines of Is6.
They arc built upon an immense rectangular plat-
form of granite about eight feet high. They are in
a dilapidated condition. They are odd structures.
Innumerable crows flit over the weather-beaten
roofs, and fill the somber groves with their cease-
less clamor. The legends say that in ancient times
they were gifted with strange powers of speech.
Aug. 26. — We left Hongu and climbed over the
Endless Mountain for about ten miles. With the
exception of Fujiyama, it is the hardest climbing I
have done in Japan. The amount of water that
you drink is surprising. There being no springs
along the roadside, your coolie has to carry a large
supply along. The mountain is about five thou-
sand feet high. The view from the summit is ex-
tremely grand. In all directions the mountains
roll away in endless Avaves. A more rugged region
can hardly be imagined. There are no large towns
here, but there are great numbers of hamlets
scattered all along the mountain roads. In one of
the houses I found an old Tower musket with a
bayonet. Inquiring v/hcthcr robbers troubled the
people, I was informed that wild boars gave great
trouble in the potato patches, and had to be fought
fiercely, as they loved potatoes and became savage
on being interrupted in their meals. We traveled
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 239
through this magnificent country for about twenty
miles. Stopped for the night at Yagura, perched
far up the mountain side.
Aug. 27. — Continued our journey twenty-eight
miles along the tops of the high mountains. The
scenery, to be appreciated, must be seen. A
typhoon came upon us and soon made us as wet as
you please. My rubber cloak came in handy.
There was something so weird and grand in thus
promenading nature aroused that I count this as
the most enjoyable day of our excursion. Passed
the night at Otake.
Aug. 28. — Walked eight miles more and made
Coya-san. Determined to stop here a couple of
days.
Coya monastery is at the summit of a mountain
five thousand feet high. Deep groves of superb
cryptomeiria that have been cultivated with the
greatest care for many centuries cover the moun-
tain to its base. For miles around the shrines be-
token the vicinity of the monastery. Coya-san is
the oldest Buddhist monastery in Japan. It was
founded by Kobu-Daishi thirteen hundred years
ago. This same man introduced Buddhism into
Japan. He selected this mountain summit and
built a small temple, and spent his life in propagat-
ing his creed. He lived a life of great self-denial.
He rose early, prayed long and often, and fasted
frequently. Instead of using a mirror, he looked
into a cistern when he arranged his hair. When,
after a long life of labor, his end drew near, he sent
240 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
all his companions away from the temple. He told
them that when they no longer heard the sound of
the bell that he tapped when he prayed, they might
know that Kobu-Daishi was dead. Faintly hummed
the bell all day long. Fainter were its notes as
night drew on ; and in the gray dawn, when the
priests slid back the shojccs, Kobu-Daishi lay dead
upon the floor before Buddha in Nirvana, and was
devoutly clasping his rosary.
But the temple grew, and within a few years a
vast monastery covered the mountain summit.
Thousands of priests officiated at the shrines. The
place became a city of priests. Commerce was in-
terdicted ; trade was not allowed. Profound peace
and quiet reigned. Women were not allowed
within five miles of the base of the mountain.
Sacred fires were kept perpetually burning from the
original flame that Kobu-Daishi brought from
India. Hundreds of these lights are kept in a vast
room. They never go out. Priests watch them
night and day. Some of the lamps must have
been kept burning many centuries. When a prince
dies he will donate a fund to the monastery to
keep a lamp, lit from Kobu-Daishi's flame, per-
petually burning.
In front of this shrine is a huge meteoric stone
in a large cage. The story is that when Kobu-
Daishi went to India he flung it back into Japan to
announce his arrival.
After walking through many streets and avenues
lined with shrines and temples, you strike out into
A TRIP THROUGH CLASSIC JAPAN. 24 1
a long, somber avenue of pine trees that is over a
mile and a half in length. On either hand are
tombs. This is the cemetery of the monastery.
Here is found the first tombstone erected in Japan.
It is about five feet high. It is of stone, and is
more like a pyramid in its shape than anything else
I can compare it to. It is covered with Sanskrit
inscriptions, like all the other graves. Many of
the Daimios of Japan are buried here. Some of
their tombs are very elaborate. Granite and bronze
are the chief materials employed. All those buried
here were first cremated. This ceremony was often
attended with very imposing services.
The Buddhist literature of the monastery is very
ancient and valuable. It is all in Sanskrit, and is
quite unintelligible to the priests in general.
At present there are not over three hundred
priests connected with Coya-san, but in its palmy
days, before the Revolution, it numbered from three
to five thousand.
In the house set apart for a hotel, it is curious to
notice all the servants and waiters being men.
They all have shaved heads. I was also much in-
terested in seeing weasels running all over the
roofs. Upon inquiry we were informed that as
the priests could not take life in any form, they
became rapidly overrun with rats. Weasels were
then introduced, and the rats disappeared. But
there was nothing to drive away the weasels. So
for centuries they have become permanent fixtures.
When you ask the priests why they were not re-
16
242 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
sponsible for causing the death of so many rats,
they simply reply that the rats could have left had
they found the locality too dangerous ! Another
feature of Coya-san is the absence of mosquitoes.
So cool is the air that these tormentors are rarely
seen.
Were I disposed to dream away life in profound
repose and ambitionless existence, I would select
Coya-san.
Aug. 30. — We are back again in Kioto, being
well pleased and well tired with our tramp of six
hundred miles.
I am now engaged for a year, teaching at Kioto.
The Satsuma Rebellion so drained the government
funds that it was found necessary to close the
school in which I was teaching at Tokio. I will
endeavor to give you my impressions of Kioto be-
fore long.
Yours truly,
Theophilus Pratt.
THE GREAT BEIX AT DAI-BITZ TEMPI E. KIOTO.
UVa//rr Photograf>h.^
LETTER XIV.
KIOTO.
Kioto, September lo, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
Kioto is the most interesting city in Japan. A
thousand years of history, poetry, and romance
cluster around it. It is situated in the Province of
Yamashiro (Mountain Castle), in the heart of Japan.
High mountains surround it on the eastern, north-
ern, and western sides, thus protecting it from the
cold winds during the winter, while, during the
summer, the sea breezes cool it from the south.
Through the center of the city flows the Kamo-
Gawa (River of the Wild Ducks). This noisy
stream, let loose from the mountains on the north,
comes tumbling along over pebbles, bowlders, and
sand-bars. During heavy rains it assumes formid-
able proportions. Three or four long wooden bridges
span it, and connect the two halves of the city.
The Kamo-Gawa flows southward through Fusim^,
the southern suburb of Kioto ; thence it winds
among foot-hills and rice-fields through a very pic-
turesque country for about thirty miles, until it
loses itself in the waters of Osaca Bay.
In 1875, before the railway was constructed,
244 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
when I visited Kioto for the first time, I had to
come up this river in a long, flat-botlomed boat.
In old times this river was the principal means of
approach from Osaca.
In coming here from Tokio, you may choose
from three routes. The quickest is by steamer to
Kob6, and thence by railway for fifty miles. This
journey requires about three days. The second
route is by the Tokaido over Hakon6 Pass, beside
the base of majestic Fujisan, through the fishing
villages along the coast and through Nagoya, and
then around the southern end of Lake Biwa through
a gap in the mountains to Kioto. This trip occu-
pies about ten days journeying hy jmriksJta, This
was the route by which I returned to Tokio in
1875. It is a magnificent highway, shaded for a
great distance by cryptomeiria of centuries' growth.
The third route is by the Nakasendo (Inland Road).
This is the grandest of all the routes. It comes
directly through the inland provinces, crossing the
magnificent mountains of Shinano.
The population of Kioto numbers about five
hundred thousand souls. The city is built in the
usual Japanese fashion. In the center lies the now
deserted Gosho, the ancient residence of the em-
perors. It covers but a few acres of ground, and
the gardens and parks are inclosed with a high
wall.
Skirting the city on all sides are groves, gardens,
pagodas, temples, and monasteries. The encircling
foot-hills are covered with them. These temples
KIOTO, 245
and monasteries formed the pride and glory of
Kioto. At one time in the city's history there
were four thousand of them. Many of the monas-
teries are surrounded by deep groves and acres of
greensward and shrubbery. Immense groves of
cherry trees are scattered over all the foot-hills and
in all the gardens around the villas and temples, so
that in the spring the city seems to be fringed with
clouds of white and pink blossoms which, with a
background of majestic mountains, form a scene
of peerless beauty. Seen at such times from the
top of one of the surrounding mountains, the city
lies at your feet like a lovely garden — sweet as we
might imagine a glimpse of paradise to be.
I shall not attempt to give you a minute descrip-
tion of the various temples of Kioto. The task
would be indeed formidable. I send you, however,
Satow's Guide Book to Kioto, which will furnish you
considerable interesting information. I will only
attempt to describe three or four of the temples
that have most impressed me.
Just back of my house lies the monastery of
Chioin. It covers the entire hill side, and is one of
the largest in the empire. The central edifice is an
immense affair. Like all the native structures in
Japan, it is built entirely of wood. The huge pil-
lars supporting the immense roof are of kayakK
The roof is a wonderfully heavy affair. Taking the
tiles and rafters together, the thickness must be
about ten feet. The object of so heavy a roof is
to neutralize the effect of earthquake shocks upon
246 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the pillars. This structure was erected two or
three hundred years ago. Far up amid the tangled
maze of rafters, the priest points out to you the
umbrella that the architect left sticking there cent-
uries ago. This temple is considered the finest
structure of its kind in Japan. It was built regard-
less of expense. In the grove beside it is a belfry
containing the largest bell in Japan. The height is
said to be eighteen feet. I was unable to meas-
ure it for myself as it hung in the belfry, but the
thickness of the bronze at its mouth measured ten
inches. Like all bells in Japan, this one has no
tongue, but it is struck from the outside by letting
a heavy log of wood swing against its massive sides.
It requires eight men to properly manipulate this
huge piece of timber in order to swing it with accu-
rate precision, so as not to deaden the sound. I
had the pleasure of hearing it rung several times.
The sound is a deep-toned boom — grand and mag-
nificent beyond expression. The trembling vibra-
tions that follow the boom last quite a while, and
fill the groves with soft and deeply melancholy
melody.
Leaving Chioin and skirting the suburbs in a
northerly direction, we come to a singular structure
known as the Kin-Kakku-Gi. In ancient times an
emperor, tired of the seclusion of the Gosho, de-
cided to abdicate. He accordingly built this resi-
dence for himself in a most lovely locality at the
base of the mountains, surrounding it with exten-
sive gardens filled with lakes, dwarfed landscape,
KIOTO. 247
and shrubbery. The ceilings and walls of the
building were covered with sheets of pure silver.
This location is specially celebrated for the superb
view of the moon that can be had as it rises over
the mountains. Here the emperor spent his life
in meditation and in composing poetry. And the
surroundings were certainly congenial to such occu-
pations, for a lovelier locality would be difficult to
find. On a clear night, the queenly moon floats
above the mountain top, bathing the ravines and
gardens in a soft, dreamy light ; and the dwarfed
pines and the shrubbery, reflected in the calm
waters of the lakes, seem but unsubstantial crea-
tions of the fancy.
Upon the other side of the city is another struct-
ure of a similar character, known as the Gin-
Kakku-Gi. It is upon a larger scale than the Kin-
Kakku-GL It was built by another emperor for
similar purposes. Instead of being covered with
sheets of silver, however, it was covered with sheets
of gold. It is embowered in gardens and groves.
I shall not attempt to give any further descrip-
tion of the temples of Kioto. Even at the present
day, they are numbered by hundreds. Not only
are the suburbs filled with these shrines and monas-
teries, but the surrounding mountains abound with
them. Near the summit of Hiyeisan, a cone that
towers to an altitude of nearly five thousand feet,
about seven miles north-east of the city, is a superb
monastery that I shall describe more at length
hereafter.
248 LET TERS FROM J A PA N.
Kioto was the religious center of Japan. The
emperor was the patron of religion, and Buddhism
was the preferred creed. The monasteries were
famous centers of ecclesiastical learning. As the
priests were learned men, their monasteries also be-
came centers of elegant culture and refinement —
famous colleges, in fact, where the gentry were ed-
ucated. Emperors have received tutoring within
these sacred inclosures. Kioto was built over one
thousand years ago. The emperor moved to this
place from Nara. Although the surroundings of
Kioto are so serene and lovely, yet its history has
been one of almost continued bloodshed. For
centuries it was the center of intrigue and civil
discord. Repeatedly has it been burned to the
ground. But during the past three hundred years,
under the Tokugawa rCgimc, profound peace has
prevailed, and the city has prospered greatly.
I found the Kioto people to be very different
from the Tokio people. They regard themselves
as the most cultured portion of the empire. They
highly pride themselves upon their aristocratic
blood. They possess much supercilious pride and
a vast amount of indolence. In few parts of Japan
— I will go further and say that in no part of Japan
— are foreigners treated with such cool and patron-
izing contempt as here. Nor are the natives re-
markably popular with their own countrymen.
They characterize outsiders as uncultured and
boorish — a criticism not very highly relished by
Japanese at large, as you may naturally infer.
KIOTO, 249
The people are much given up to pleasure. The
theaters are numerous and well patronized. The
various holidays and festivals are celebrated with
processions and feastings. Religious festivals are
exceedingly common. Each monastery has its
ffite days ; the people celebrate them by turning
out in immense crowds, dressed in gala costume,
and thronging the streets and groves, picnicing
and gossiping to their heart's content.
The most extraordinary of all the holidays is the
day set apart in honor of the courtesans. In other
parts of Japan the observance of this day has ceased,
but it is still celebrated with much zest here. I
happened to be here last July when it was being
celebrated. All day long the people were busy
erecting booths, platforms, and scaffoldings along
the streets where the procession was going to pass
in the evening. At dusk the entire city was gor-
geously illuminated with paper lanterns. The
courtesans slowly paraded the streets in panto-
mime, each group personating some domestic or
social scene. One group represented a lady with
her maids at work in the garden ; they were sprink-
ling water upon the plants, dressing the shrubbery,
and catching butterflies. The bushes, the flowers,
the soil, and the general paraphernalia of a real
garden surrounded them on all sides upon moving
platforms and vehicles. The effect of the scene
was capital. A lot of half-tipsy coolies helped
along the ladies by pulling the vehicles through
the street.
250 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Another scene represented silk weavers. There
were the looms and the shuttles. There were the
revolving reels and the rapidly forming warp and
woof. While to complete the domestic scene in
all its details, an imitation dog lay upon the floor
and wagged its tail in obedience to the skillfully
manipulated string of the attendant.
In another scene the matron was in the kitchen
preparing the evening meal. There were the oven
and the kettle, and the mischievous child always
in the way. The rice was steamed, the fish was
broiled, and the salt radish was cut up, in a way
fairly enough to excite the cravings of hunger.
It took several hours for the various pantomimes
to pass. The courtesans were dressed with great
tiiagnificcnce. Some had on scv^cn robes, each one
of which would have befitted a queen. Every-
thing was very orderly. The ceremonies were
conducted with great propriety, and the crowds
showed great decorum and respect, as this was
considered the courtesans' yearly offering of de-
votion to the gods.
During the summer the people in Kioto take
things very easy. The surrounding hills and moun-
tains abound in groves, cascades, and glens. These
cool resorts are thronged with jolly picnicers all
day long. The amount of rice, wine, and water-
melon that a Jap can annihilate on such occasions
is amazing. He gives up the entire day, and fre-
quently a succession of days, to merry-making.
He calculates to arrive at the shady glen before
KIOTO. 251
the heat of the day has set in. A slice of water-
melon is to be found in his hand at most any time
before lunch. He and his companions lounge
around upon matted platforms scattered all through
the glen. Between times they smoke their pipes
and gossip, occasionally stretching their limbs and
uttering stentorian yawns that fairly shake the
trees. Just before lunch they strip themselves for
a bath in the cascade. This process is conducted
with boundless sang froidy in view of the circum-
stance that the glen is swarming with people.
Having whetted their appetites sufficiently, they
take hold of a tubful of rice and a cask of sak^ with
a zest quite impossible to describe. Raw carp and
soy are taken as relishes. After lunch, they again
fall upon their water-melons, pipes, and bathing.
Toward sundown another assault is delivered
against the rice-tub and wine-cask. And in the
cool gloaming they disperse and homeward fly, —
provided none of them have been disabled during
the assault.
Such is a brief description of the salient points of
Kioto. To go fully into the subject would require
a book — which I do not intend writing.
I am situated, as regards my house and social
surroundings, far more pleasantly than when I was
in Hirosaki.
My house is an old temple near the entrance to
the Chioin monastery. It was built about three
hundred years ago, and was originally designed as
a residence for the ladies of the Shogun's house-
252 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
hold in case they should chance to visit Kioto.
But as the ladies never came, the priests utilized
the house as a temple. It is very substantially
built. A broad veranda surrounds it, and it has a
heavy tile roof supported by massive timbers.
There is but a single story, and as you may easily
imagine, the ceiling is immensely high. A fine
suite of six rooms constitute my apartments. The
shojees are covered with gilt paper and are set in
lacquered frames. They are beautifully orna-
mented. In a wing attached to my house are
three rooms for the boy, and also the kitchen.
This kitchen I will describe more fully in the latter
part of this letter. Surrounding these premises on
all sides is a lovely and extensive garden, and we
are inclosed by a wall through which ingress may
be obtained by a stately gateway. I could not de-
sire a more private residence.
My neighbors are all Buddhist priests. The one
on my right-hand is busily engaged every day in
drilling a class of boys in the Buddhist chants. He
keeps at it so regularly that I frequently find my-
self unconsciously humming the monotonous scores
of the dreamy rhythms. The priest on my left-
hand is a very religious man, judging from the
amount of praying that he indulges in. He spends
two or three hours daily at his matins and vespers.
He begins with a slow, droning chant, tapping on
a little bell betimes. His chant rapidly increases
in intensity, until you hear but a prolonged whir-
ring sound accompanied by the silvery notes of the
KIOTO. 253
humming bell. Then the sounds slowly subside
until the prayer ends as it began in measured ca-
dence and subdued tones. Then you know that
the beads on the rosary have been counted. He
goes over his rosary again and again, until I am
fairly drowsy listening to him.
As you already know, it is forbidden to the
Buddhists to destroy life in any shape. As a nat-
ural consequence of the following of this doctrine,
the precincts of their monasteries abound in all
kinds of life peculiar to the various localities. Cen-
tipedes fully six inches long are frequently seen
around here in the gardens. They sometimes get
into the houses, and make themselves as disagree-
able as possible. Should you hang your coat upon
the walls, you will probably find one of these hor-
rid creatures in the sleeve when you attempt to
put it on again. Their bites or stings are painful
but not mortal. Snakes and lizards also are about
as plentiful as it is possible for them to be after
centuries of pampering within these sacred inclos-
ures.
And if it were not for the friendly services of the
"weasels, the audacious impudence and the obtru-
sive familiarity of the rats and mice would speedily
render the existence of man quite problematical.
But it is not quite so easy to exterminate the
snakes. They, however, avoid the presence of
man, and keep clear of his abode. During the
heavy rains last week, when I was in the bath-
room, a small one fell from the rafters across my
254 L^ TTERS FROM JAPAN.
shoulder and slipped down upon my bare feet. I
jumped aside with a mighty spring, and the reptile
squirmed through a crack in the floor out into the
garden. I can not go out into my garden without
seeing half a dozen lizards basking themselves in
the sunshine, and I have no doubt that in the dense
shrubbery and in the extensive bamboo copses
scattered all around here, snakes could be found by
the score. It is very fortunate that the snakes in
Japan are of a harmless nature. In the vicinity of
Buddhist monasteries in the tropics you will find
serpents of great size, — provided such monasteries
are not in the immediate vicinity of teeming popu-
lations.
But the most surprising creatures that seek
refuge within these sacred inclosurcs are the foxes.
A family of them live under my house. They are
plentiful all around here. At night-time they come
out and scour the suburbs and hills for poultry' and
birds. They probably visit all the Inari shrines
for miles around, feasting upon the fried wheat
cakes that have been prepared for their special
benefit by the fox-worshipers. During their ram-
bles around my garden, they frequently come across
my neighbors* dogs. After indulging in animated
snarling and purring for about five minutes, they
will part company. As the native dogs are too
cowardly to come to close quarters, the foxes find
their strange abodes about as safe as they can
desire.
My household arrangements are upon a very
KIOTO, 255
simple scale. As my contract is only for one
year, it will not pay me to buy very much furni-
ture, and if this Satsuma rebellion continues
much longer to drain the government funds, I may
not stay out my year. Any furniture that I might
buy now would be a dead loss when I came to
leave, for the natives do not use European furni-
ture, and the few missionary families here are al-
ready well supplied.
My bedroom is adorned with severe simplicity.
I sleep on the floor after the native fashion. Dur-
ing the day-time my bedding is stowed away in the
closet. In one corner of the room stands my zinc
trunk, which answers the double purpose of ward-
robe and money-chest. A wash-stand and two
chairs complete the furnishing of the room. All
the floors throughout the house are covered with
fine tatamis. My study has a table and two chairs,
and my parlor has a table and four chairs ; the
walls, corners, and sides of the room being orna-
mented with curios and bric-h-brac. The dining-
room has a table and three chairs, while the spare
room is quite bare.
My kitchen is about as interesting as any part of
the house. It is without any furniture whatsoever —
not even a cooking range. For cooking purposes
my boy uses a couple of small earthen ovens, no
larger than a pair of flower-pots. It is astonishing
how he manages to cook at all. Yet he certainly
does marvelously well with omelets, soups, broiled
chickens, and fried potatoes. His fuel is charcoal.
256 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
This produces a powerful heat, and is compara-
tively free from smoke. The only important uten-
sil that he uses is a gridiron. All the other articles
are of native production, and consist of an iron
pot, a frying-pan, and a couple of insignificant clay
bowls, in which he boils potatoes and puddings.
With such primitive utensils he displays great in-
genuity in preparing food. The other day I in-
vited the two directors to dinner. The first course
was tomato soup. Then came boiled fish, with ^^ig
sauce. Then came broiled venison and baked pota-
toes. After this came a quasi plum pudding, com-
posed of currants instead of plums, and of suet
and flour. The wine sauce accompanying it could
not have been surpassed, although the " wine " was
some brandy that he had clandestinely abstracted
from my medicine chest. The dessert of this ex-
traordinary dinner consisted of peaches, plums, and
grapes.
But every rose has its thorn. My boy will get
drunk. About once a fortnight he goes on a
spree and comes staggering into the kitchen an
hour or so behind time. His apologies and prom-
ises of reform are as profuse as can be desired ; but
his periodical sprees come in regular order never-
theless. I shall be compelled to part with him be-
fore long. But as I am in the immediate vicinity
of a Treaty Port, where competent cooks are plen-
tiful, I shall not have much trouble in replacing
him. It is truly amazing how these Japs pick up
our style of cooking. They all soon learn to cook
KIOTO, 257
fairly well ; and some of them become exquisite
adepts in cuisine.
So much for my household affairs. My school
duties are similar to those in Tokio. I usually
walk the three miles between my house and the
school. The hours are from nine in the morning
to three in the afternoon, Saturdays and Sundays
being holidays. The scholars are mostly young
men of the samurai class.
As to my social surroundings I cannot say much,
as they are very limited. There are only four
foreign families here, three of whom are those of
American missionaries. These people are hospita-
ble and friendly, and I spend many a profitable
evening in their company.
I must now close this rambling letter. Kioto is
a difficult subject to write upon if one wishes to
avoid giving hackneyed information about the place.
Yours truly,
Theophilus Pratt.
17
LETTER XV.
AN EXCURSION TO NARA.
Kioto, September 17, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
I TOOK a trip to Nara the other day. This city-
is about thirty miles from Kioto. Having no pass-
port, I was under the necessity of going and re-
turning on the same day. We started off early in
the morning in our jinrikshaSy and arrived there
about midday. This gave us fully half a day to
inspect the place ; and we had the cool night in
which to return to Kioto. The trip was a thor-
oughly enjoyable one, although rather wearisome.
The road lay through a somewhat level country —
fairly picturesque, but rather uninteresting; and
we were glad enough to reach Nara in time for
lunch I can assure you.
Nara was the ancient capital of the emperors. It
is situated among picturesque hills near some
mountains. In its days of prosperity it was a
large and handsome city, but its present popula-
tion is not over twenty thousand ; and nothing re-
mains of its ancient glory except the vast temple
and colossal image of Buddha,* or DauButz^ as
*Thc illustration on the opposite page is a reproduction
from a Japanese painting that had hung on the walls of some
3"
THK DEATH OK BUDDHA.
{See Footnote on next fiage.)
AN EXCURSION TO NARA. 259
the natives designate it. Otherwise the place bears
no comparison with lovely Kioto.
Passing down the long, straggling street that
/orms the backbone of the town, you will see, on
your left, an immense grove of stately pines and
cedars stretching over hills and vales far away
monastery or temple for about fifty years prior to its sale to the
author at Nagoya in 1877. It was sold because the disestablish-
ment of Buddhism as the State religion of the Japanese Empire
had protluced great poverty in that sect. The illustration repre-
sents the supposed scene at the death-bed of Buddha. So great
a benefactor had he been that all creation is represented as mourn-
ing at his death — personages of royal birth, celebrities of various
nationalities, animals of varied species, fowls of the air, and even
the fiends from hell are represented as l)ewailing the misfortune
which the great mercifulness of Buddha's nature had rendered
universal. At the top of the picture, descending upon clouds and
mists, is represented the mother of Buddha, accompanied by
female friends and preceded by a guide, coming from Paradise to
witness the closing scene in the life of her illustrious son. Her
lamentations are violent, because of the fact that the mystic medi-
cine that she had sent to her son had been carried away from his
bedside by some thieving cat, which had scampered up into a tall
tree with it, thus rendering the recovery of the renowned philan-
thropist impossible. To the left-hand side of the picture, high up
among the boughs, may be seen the unlucky bag of medicine.
The contents thereof have melted, and are represented as run-
ning down the trunk of the tree. The artist, as a solemn warning
to all future generations of feline depredators, and also, we may pre-
sume, as condign punishment for the immediate freebooter that
had absconded with madame's physic, has failed to represent a cat
in any part of his painting. The entire scene is located by the
artist upon the sea-shore, where the waves may be seen through the
trees. In this representation he carries out the legend which
chronicles Buddha as having died upon some part of the coast of
Ceylon.
26o LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
into the mountains. Looming above the trees
you will see the massive roof of the temple con-
taining the monster image. The tiles are im-
mensely heavy, and are bound together with strong
iron bands. The thickness of the roof is fully ten
feet. Surrounding this central figure like attendant
guards, are several smaller temples, scarcely show-
ing their gables above the trees. Coming now to
a long, stately avenue, we go up for nearly half a
mile through two huge gateways to the temple.
The gateway, through which we first pass, merits a
special description. It is a large, double-storied
tower, about fifty feet high. The upper story is
filled with dilapidated idols. Through the lower
passes the gateway. On each side of the portal
are two gigantic images about twenty feet high.
Their faces are distorted in the most hideous
fashion, and the weapons in their hands are poised
in a threatening manner. The ancient coating of
red paint has dropped from their bodies, and the
heat of many centuries has warped the hard wood,
so that the muscular arms and legs have split
open to the center. These images are the gods
of wrestlers and mighty men of valor. People
desiring to excel in physical strength come here
to worship. Their method of devotion is rather
singular. The prayers are carefully written on
small pieces of paper, which, after having been
chewed up into spit-balls, are then deliberately
flung at the grim deities — it being considered quite
essential that the missiles should stick fast. The
AN EXCURSION TO NARA. 26 1
monsters are covered with these concise supplica-
tions.
Passing through this gateway, we enter upon a
continuation of the avenue. The stately pines
screen us admirably from the sun, and the green-
sward on all sides refreshes the eyes nearly blinded
with the glare of the dusty road from Kioto.
Under the trees are tea-booths furnishing refresh-
ments to travelers and devotees. Appropriating
some seats in the shade, we plunged into the
depths of a water-melon, and ate vermicelli and
pickled plums for the space of half an hour.
Continuing our stroll down the avenue, we came
to a second gateway, through which we passed into
a vast court-yard. On fite days, several thousand
people are accommodated within this spacious in-
closure. On the other side of it stands the temple.
This building was originally of a bright vermilion
color, but the rains of centuries have washed it
bare. Across the face of the temple runs a high
vestibule whose roof is supported by large wooden
columns. The entire structure is of wood. The
roof is supported by sixty huge wooden pillars.
From one of the pamphlets distributed by the
priest within the vestibule the following informa-
tion is derived :
" The original temple of Dai-Butz was built in
the reign of the Emperor Shiomu, the forty-sixth
Emperor of Japan, who lived about 1524 years ago.
It took eleven years to cast the, idol and to build
the temple. Four hundred and twenty-nine years
262 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
after the completion of the temple, during one of
the civil feuds, Taira-Shigehira, a famous chieftain,
destroyed it. Five years thereafter it was rebuilt,
and the image was recast. Four hundred and
eighty-four years then slipped away, and a fierce
battle took place between Matsunaga-Hisahide and
Miyoshi-Yasunaga, two feudal chiefs, during which
the image and the temple were again destroyed.
And about seven hundred years ago the present
edifice was built ; and the present head and shoul-
ders, which had been melted during the previous
conflagration, were recast."
Closing the pamphlet and crossing the threshold
of the temple, we sec Dai-Butz looming up before
us to the height of seventy feet. In the middle of
the temple is an immense stone platform nearly
two hundred feet in circumference, and ten feet
high. Upon this platform is constructed a smaller
one of solid bronze, six feet high. Its surface is
composed of bronze petals of the lotus flower.
Seated cross-legged upon this flowery throne is
Buddha in Nirvana, — a stupendous, olive-colored
image. This is the largest bronze image in the
world. The actual height of the idol, measuring
from the bronze platform, is fifty-three feet and five
inches. It is proportioned for a standing image
one hundred feet high.
Turning to our pamphlet, we find that this
image is seven hundred years old. Seven succes-
sive castings were made before a satisfactory piece
of work could be produced.
AN EXCURSION TO NARA.
263
Three thousand tons of charcoal were consumed
during the operation. The total weight of the
metal used is four hundred and fifty tons. The
alloys are proportioned as follows :
Gold = 500 pounds avoirdupois.
Tin = 16,827 " "
Mercury = 1,984 " "
Copper = 986,080 " "
Total = 1,005,391 " "
Taking for granted that the figures transmitted
to us by antiquity are accurate, it will appear that
this idol contains nearly 300,000 pounds more of
metal than the Colossus of Rhodes contained.
And its proportions must be almost the same.
The following figures will convey to your mind
some idea of the immense size of this image :
Height from throne. . .
•• *• floor
Length of face
Width " ••
Length of eyebrow . . .
" *• eye
Breadth of nose
Height ♦* "
Length of mouth
•• •• ear
Width across shoulders
" ** breast...
** '* abdomen
Length of upper arm .
** " forearm....
53
5
70
16
9
5
5
4i
3
9
2
9*
I
6
3
7
8
5
38
7
18
18
19
15
264
LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
length of palm
" middle finger
Length from knee to foot
Diameter of knee
Circumference of middle finger
Height of each lotus petal
Width '• •
Height of each curl on head
Diameter of each curl on head. {There are k^
curls on the head )
Diameter of back of throne
Length of each ray protruding from back of throne.
Height of temple
Length" "
Width •• "
5
5
23
7
5
6
30
I
75
83
170
290
170
6
'si'
The image is hollow, the average thickness of
the bronze being about one foot. The lower parts
and the bronze pedestal, however, must be almost
solid. It has been cast in separate pieces, and
these have been joined together with a kind of
metallic cement, leaving a barely perceptible mark.
The surfaces of the lotus petals composing the
pedestal are covered with minute engravings repre-
senting temples, dragons, combats between fiends,
shrines perched on little knolls, various kinds of
flowers, and a few other heathenish conceptions.
The left hand of the image extends along the
knee, with the third and fourth fingers slightly
raised. The open palm projects over the knee as
if offering something to a needy individual, or
showing the plausibility of some pet idea. A
grand piano could easily be set upon the hand
AN EXCURSION TO NARA. 265
thus opened ; you could comfortably lie down in
the palm, and you sit upon the thumb as you
would upon a log of wood. The position of the
right hand is somewhat different. The wrist is
slightly elevated above the right knee, the open
hand being raised at right angles to the forearm as
if trying to push something back, — a repelling ges-
ture. The eyes are half shut. The face is fat and
flabby. The general expression is sleepy and good
natured. The image is represented as dressed in a
simple priest's robe. The folds and creases have
been cast with wonderful accuracy.
Behind the image is the gilt back of its throne,
upon which are sixteen brackets holding sixteen
bronze images, nine feet high each. In front are
two colossal bronze vases, containing bronze lotus
plants, twenty feet high. Perched on the rim of
each vase is a large bronze butterfly, with a span
across the wings of five feet ; and upon each side
of the image is an immense wooden statue forty
feet high.
Everything, in fact, has been planned upon an
immense scale. The only thing approximating to
a musical instrument is a huge drum with its head
battered to shreds. The floor is of hardened earth.
The gigantic pillars are formed of massive, wedge-
shaped slices of wood, bound together with iron
bands. The ceilings and walls are quite bereft of
paint; the spiders spin their webs in unbecoming
proximity to His Majesty's head.
At first sight, the proportions of this image are
266 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
very deceptive. Looking up at the middle finger,
you would not be apt to guess its length at more
than two feet, yet, upon measurement, it will prove
to be five feet long ; but, after taking a few meas-
urements, the tremendous proportions gradually
dawn upon you.
This, then, is the materialized conception of
Buddha in Nirvana. The dreamy reveries of the
persecuted Brahmin have thus found ponderous
shape in this remote corner of the world. Under
the blistering and enervating heat of India, what
strange visions were evolved from the brain of
that mysterious individual whose dreams of Nir-
vana have shaped the religious natures of millions
of human beings for over two thousand years !
Leaving the drowsy atmosphere of the temple,
we sauntered over the grounds of the monastery.
A covered way leads to a grove on the hillside.
Climbing a long flight of broad stone steps, we
came to an old belfry containing a large bell. The
bell, according to my pamphlet, was cast 628 A.D.,
having been made at the special request of Shittio-
Tenno. Its dimensions and composition are given
as follows:
Height, 13^ feet.
Diameter at mouth, gyi feet.
Thickness of metal, \o}i inches.
Amount of copper, 26 tons and 600 lbs.
" " tin, I ton and 500 lbs.
Total weight, 55,100 lbs.
AN EXCURSION TO NARA. 267
In the vicinity of this belfry are several booths
for the sale of trinkets, charms, and mementoes.
Old pieces of bone, horn, and ivory, have been
carved into tooth-picks, combs, hair-pins, etc, for the
devotees and visitors to purchase. You will also
see some old swords and spears, said to have been
used by the retainers of Hid^yoshi in the invasion
of Corea three hundred years ago. Returning
from their victories and conquests, they hung up
their weapons here to show their gratitude for the
successful issue of the enterprise — much in the
same way, I imagine, as the shipwrecked Roman
sailors hung up in the temples their dripping gar-
ments to testify their appreciation of Neptune's
merciful assistance. And, as the dampened tunics
have long since been taken down from the moldy
walls, so these ancient blades are rapidly disappear-
ing before the impetuous advance of our mercenary
curio hunters.
The masses of the Japanese are very religious,
or superstitious, as some choose to term it. Bud-
dhism gained a hold on the popular heart that
Shintoism and Confucianism failed to gain. Not
satisfied with erecting this immense image, they
constructed another one, almost as large, at Kama-
kura, near Yokohama. It is in a lovely glade on
the Pacific coast. It was cast about six hundred
years ago by order of the Shoguns, whose capital at
that time was Kamakura. 1 he height of this image
is forty-four feet. The physical proportions, how-
ever, are much smaller than those of the one here
268 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
in Nara. Its head is bent forward a trifle more,
and its hands are folded. In other respects it is an
exact copy. The temple that formerly sheltered it
was carried away by an earthquake wave. Five
successive tidal billows came rolling in from the
Pacific. As the last surge, black with people and
the debris of the city, rushed down the valley, it
carried the temple out to sea. So he sits there in
the open air, his head looming above the pine-
trees, and his face turned toward the peaceful
waters of the ocean — typical of the dreamless
Nirvana. The bronze is assuming a dull green
color, being affected by the corrosive influence
of the moist winds that come from the Pacific.
There is a staircase inside of the image. A large
window in the back floods the cavernous vitals
with light, showing the names of scores of
ambitious foreigners scrawled in all conceivable
places.
Late in the afternoon we began to think of
returning to Kioto. We had rambled over the
grounds and had inspected every nook. The
monastery showed decided marks of neglect.
The leaves covered the avenues and the green-
swards, and the lichens and the moss seemed
to take melancholy satisfaction in creeping into
all the crevices of the old shrines.
What somber reflections such scenes excite!
Here in the belfry hangs the bell that sent its sol-
emn tones through the glades and groves, calling
the monks to chant their matins and vespers, while
AN EXCURSION TO NARA. 269
Europe was yet in mediaeval gloom. The Algon-
quins battled with the Iroquois beside the waters of
the Hudson while these mellow tones trembled
through the upland woods, summoning the votaries
to chant their monotonous rhythms before the grim
monster presiding within the sanctuary below. One
can almost fancy he sees the phantom-like proces-
sion of yellow-robed priests sweeping through yon-
der gateway, across the courtyard, up the steps, and
into the evening shades of the gloomy building.
They prostrate themselves before the sable god,
dimly perceptible through the dusky shadows and
the smoke of the burning incense. The huge drum
shakes the place with its bellowings, while the bell
rends the air with its throbbing notes — drowning
the murmurs of the assembled throng. The priests
now increase the volume of their chants, their
notes are pitched on a higher key, and their rapid
hummings fill the immense room with a tempest of
prayer. The immense brazen gongs strike up, the
drum shakes the place with its stupendous din, the
bell sends one continued wave of clangor rolling
up among the dusky pines and down over the town
nestled among the foot-hills — and the people then
know that the dread god is being propitiated.
As the chants increase in rapidity, the long pro-
cession marches and counter-marches, prostrates it-
self, kneels and rises with bewildering celerity. In
the faint twilight a weak imagination could almost
fancy the placid features of the image to relax into a
smile in contemplation, forsooth, of such pageantry.
2 70 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
The din now gradually dies away, the drum and the
bell are silent, the torrent of supplication subsides,
the tapers are extinguished, the smoking incense
on the altar expends its fumes, and the procession
files out in solemn order through the shadows of
the portals. Unbroken silence again settles upon
the place, and the people slumber peacefully, know-
ing that his majesty has been pacified for the night ;
while the belated peasant, hurrying through the
somber avenues, as he sees the shadows of the
gloomy pines cast upon the crimson walls of the
sanctuary, hastens his steps lest his untimely in-
trusion arouse the latent ire of unseen powers.
When the morning mists float slowly away from
the rice-fields, the long line again marches across
the court-yard and through the portals; the same
pageantry, din, and turmoil again rouse the echoes
of the place, and the drowsy town folk then know
that the morning prayers are being offered up, and
they feel safe, for how can so fine an idol turn a
deaf ear to such pompous supplications ?
And so, for more than twelve hundred years, this
perpetual round of devotion has continued. While
empires have fallen, while arts, sciences, and civiliza-
tion were passing through troubled periods toward
a noble maturity, the rhythm of these chants —
equally unintelligible to the people and to the ma-
jority of the priests — has been supposed to propiti-
ate the dread influences of mysterious elements.
Ambitionless, spiritless, debasing, the teachings of
Buddhism have given slip to the centuries, doing
AN EXCURSION TO NARA, 271
but little to elevate humanity ; and now the light
dawning from the east has startled the votaries at
their shrines, and has roused them from their leth-
argy. And the decayed leaves tangled amid the
unkempt grass by the gales of autumn — silent wit-
nesses of the neglect settling upon the place — sug-
gest the decadence of the most ingenious religion
ever invented by the human mind ; and whether
our brain-proud philosophers are willing to admit
the fact or not, yet the conclusion seems clear, that
the tenets of Buddhism have been found insufficient
to raise mankind to that high plane of morality and
religious development to which the divine teachings
revealed through the Redeemer have been able to
raise the nations of Europe and America.
Riding home in the night, chasing the village
lights for hour after hour, I could not resist the
dreamy influence of the sweet tones of the monas-
tery bells that trembled across the rice-fields at
regular intervals. Such melancholy melody ! How
solemn and subdued were their suggestions ! Life,
they seemed to say, is undesirable ; existence is
but a curse. Let us crush all our desires, all our
passions, and all our impulses, until we have elimi-
nated them. Then our being will be merged in
the Infinite. We shall cease to have independent
existence. We shall be Nirvana — annihilated!
Yours truly,
Theophilus Pratt.
LETTER XVI.
FUJIYAMA.
Kioto, September 27, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
In looking over my journal the other day, I
came across the account of my trip up Fujiyama
two years ago. As subjects for letters are now
becoming rather scarce, I will send you a written-
up account of it. Almost everybody writing about
Japan has something to say about Fujiyama.
This naturally makes the subject somewhat stale,
nevertheless it is one that will stand much elabo-
ration.
Fujiyama is the center-piece of Japanese scenery.
It is the first point of land that the approaching
traveler sights as he comes bounding over the
waves a hundred miles away. We spied its dim
outlines at daybreak rising specter-like against the
rosy tints that suffused the horizon. All day it
loomed up before us ; its flattened crest and snow-
ribbed cone towering superbly above the massive
mountain ranges around its base. How the pas-
sengers admired its magnificent proportions ! One
of them, an Englishman, had climbed the stu-
pendous cone and had slept upon the summit.
How charmed we were with his description of
FUJIYAMA. 273
sunrise as seen from that summit, and of how
the water froze there in midsummer ! I then
resolved to climb the mountain on the first favor-
able occasion. We gazed on its expanding outlines
and changing phases with increasing admiration.
When we passed between the headlands and
steamed for hours up the bay, we found much
else to take our notice ; yet we frequently turned
our eyes Fuji-ward to admire its lovely propor-
tions. As we lay at anchor at Yokohama, the
clouds, like long banners, trailed midway from its
sides, and the radiant lines of sunset formed a
background of striking beauty. The lover of
nature never forgets this first view of Fujiyama.
Lovely Fuji ! Well art thou called the matchless
one! What wonder that the artists of the thir-
teen provinces within sight of thy stately majesty
make thee their inspiration ?
In August, of 1875, I made my arrangements
for climbing Fujiyama. My traveling companion,
whom we will designate as Jack, was also a teacher
in the government schools in Tokio. Naturally we
made congenial companions. Our plan was to
go to Kob6 by steamer, and then to return over-
land to Tokio by way of Kioto, and Fujiyama.
We were going to climb up from the sea-shore
and descend on the opposite side toward the
Hakon^ range.
Taking the steamer at Yokohama, we reached
Kob^ in a day and a half. Then we went by train to
Osaca, where we tarried a couple of days " doing "
18
2 74 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the place, as the " Globe Trotters ** express it. Then
we took a flat-bottomed river-boat and were poled
and towed up the Kamogawa to Kioto, where we
tarried ten days '* doing" the city. Leaving Kioto,
we traveled in jinrikshas along the Tokaido for
nearly three hundred miles until we reached a
village on the sea-coast near the base of Fuji-
yama. Jack had already gone on ahead to meet
some friends at Hakon^, intending to return and
meet me at the base of the mountain by the
shore, but a violent typhoon was raging along
the coast, so that I was detained here a couple
of days.
On the morning of the third day the storm had
passed away and left the atmosphere beautifully
clear. Being hidden behind a promontory, we
were as yet unable to see Fuji. We now found
ourselves unable to continue our journey by the
Tokaido, as the torrents pouring from the moun-
tains had swollen several brooks that ran across our
road to such an extent that they were quite impass-
able. We therefore took a fishing-boat and deter-
mined to round the promontory and reach the base
of the mountain by sea. Shipping our jinrikshas
and luggage, we (the boy, the coolies, and myself)
jumped into the boat, while a dozen fishermen put
their shoulders to the prow, and we were launched
with a shout into the foaming surf that came
thundering in from the Pacific. The skillful
scullers soon had us out into steadier water be-
yond the danger of capsizing.
FUJIYAMA. 275
When we had rounded the promontory, Fuji in
all his majesty stood before us. The air was so
clear that it seemed as if we could see the very
bowlders on the summit. There was nothing to
distract the gaze, as the mountain stood quite alone,
many miles from any range. It swept up directly
from the shore. Nature was in her loveliest mood
after the hurricane. The air was as clear as crystal,
and the fields of waving grain and the woods and
villages upon the majestic slopes of the mountain
stood out as distinctly as possible. The morning
sun bathed the rugged cone with purple tints of
strange beauty.
With one glance you saw the general features of
the landscape ; directly before us lay the beach ;
then came a belt of rice-fields ; then came villages,
orchards, and wheat-fields stretching several miles
up the gentle slopes ; then came a girdle of woods
winding around the mountain about midway up,
forming a vast band nearly ten miles wide ; finally
came the cone of lava and cinders, forming a mas-
sive cap fully four miles wide. The distance from
shore to summit was nearly thirty miles. The
altitude of the mountain is'nearly thirteen thousand
feet ; yet so clear was the air that the summit did
not seem to be further off than two or three miles.
The waves of the ocean were of a glorious blue.
The bold promontories toward the north and to-
ward the south plowed the deep half-way to the
horizon, making an immense semicircular bay that
bathed the base of the mountain with perpetual
276 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
foam and spray. Lovely Fuji ! What wonder that
the fisherman along the distant coast, as he sees thy
ghostly form spread against the evening skies, ad-
mires and adores thee ? What wonder that when
thy brow is black with clouds that sink midway to
the sea, — dread harbingers of the coming storm —
he fears thee ?
After sculling along the shore for some distance,
we plunged through the surf, and shot high up on
the beach. Crossing this, we found ourselves in
ricc-flelds flooded with the recent rains. The cool-
ies were frequently half-submerged. When we had
floundered half-way across this uninteresting sec-
tion of country, we spied Jack coming from the op-
posite direction. His trowsers were slung over his
shoulders, and he was wading along like a stork.
Our meeting was cordial and informal. We spent
the greater part of the morning in wading through
this flooded district. We finally reached a village
upon the slopes, where we changed our clothes and
lunched.
In the afternoon we journeyed several miles
around the slopes in order to reach the path that
led to the summit. This stretch of country between
the mountain and the ocean was indescribably
beautiful. Villages, shrines, orchards, gardens, and
wheat-fields were spread over the gently undulating
slopes in great profusion, and were wildly pictur-
esque and charming. The circumference of the
base of Fuji on this line around the slopes is sixty
miles. It takes three days to make the journey,
FUJIYAMA. 277
which is one of the loveliest imaginable, as the
scenery is perpetually changing with each spur that
you round.
Late in the afternoon we reached the path that
led to the summit. We went up the slopes for a
short distance and stopped for the night at a tem-
ple that frequently was utilized for the accommo-
dation of travelers. It would be difficult to find
a more enchanting locality. Beauty was on every
hand, — whether you watched the blue waves
speckled with sails, or the villages nestled amid
the groves and gardens, or the mists chasing the
waving billows in the wheat-fields on the slopes
overhead. And then the sunset bathing the land-
scape, and the twilight tingeing the ravines and the
woods with sable hues! How shall I describe all
this?
At seven o'clock next morning we packed our
few articles of luggage on the back of a mountain
coolie, and, with our boy, started for the summit.
We walked through ten miles of wheat-fields up
a gradually ascending slope. The mists lay heavily
along the mountain side, obscuring the view com-
pletely ; but soon after we had started the air
cleared, and the day became delightfully bright
and pleasant. So clear was the atmosphere that it
seemed as if we could have seen almost any object
on the summit twenty miles distant, yet, at that
very moment the cone was thronged with white-
robed pilgrims quite invisible to us.
By eleven oclock we had reached the woods.
2 78 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN,
We followed the narrow path through them for
six miles until we reached the barren cone. These
woods are very dense. Were you to get lost in
them you would have much difficulty in getting
out again. A gentleman connected with a survey-
ing party strayed into one of the ravines here
and nearly perished of hunger before he could
be found. The trees are pines, beeches, and bam-
boos, all tangled up with vines and impenetrable
underbrush.
The ascent through the woods was so steep that
we made frequent halts. The foliage completely
obstructed our view during this portion of the
journey. At the last resting-place on the verge
of the woods we stopped for dinner, which con-
sisted of boiled rice, sardines, crackers and tea.
Here was a temple in honor of the gods that
preside over the mountain. Precisely what the
nature of these divinities may be is a matter of
doubt to myself. Great phenomena in nature
seem to be always connected in the human im-
agination with mysterious powers. Starting with
this as a basis, the Shinto priests feel themselves
justified in trading on the situation by selling
sacred trinkets to the pilgrims, and in setting up
a huge contribution box in a conspicuous place
for the offerings of the devotees. Religion and the
" hat ** seem to be correlatives even here. As July
and August are the only months during the year
in which Fuji can be safely scaled, the season for
these priests is very short ; but, as many thou-
FUJIYAMA. 279
sands improve this opportunity to climb up, their
business must declare steady and encouraging divi-
dends.
Up to this point in the ascent, people may be
carried in kagos, or may ride on horseback ; but
from this point upward everybody must walk.
Arming ourselves with long, filleted staffs, pur-
chased from the priests, we continued our journey
and reached the cone at about two o'clock. The
scene was immediately changed — not a bit of ver-
dure lay before us — nothing but lava, rocks, and
cinders. The temperature now became rapidly
cold, and we were cautioned not to lose our
breath lest we should have difficulty in regaining
it in such rarefied atmosphere.
The ascent now became incredibly steep. We
took a zig-zag path up the cone, for it would
have been impossible to have gone straight ahead
without the assistance of ropes and ladders. Even
then we found our faces almost touching the rocks
in front of us as we climbed. We rested every
five minutes or so, and it took four hours for us to
scale this last stretch to the summit. How in the
name of human endurance our coolie managed to
carry sixty pounds of dead weight up this moun-
tain is a matter of marvel. I presume it is merely
a question of practice, but may Providence spare
me from such practice !
From the edge of the woods to the summit, at
intervals of half a mile, are eight resting-places.
These are huts constructed of lava rocks, and
28o LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
roughly floored inside. When the terrible gales
are sweeping the cone, it would be impossible
for anything like a house to stand here. We
rested at each hut, and made and drank some
tea. We were informed that all the water on the
cone was brought from the base of the moun-
tain, as there were no springs or wells in this
heap of cinders, and the snow in the ravines was
inaccessible. This impressed us as rather strange.
The ravines did not seem so very difficult of access
after all. I presume this was merely an excuse
for selling the water and netting a handsome
dividend.
Hut what created a far more lively impression
upon us was the host of fleas in all the huts.
They swarmed ! Pilgrims from all parts of the
empire, bringing every variety of species of these
insolent parasites about their clothing, had pro-
duced a cross-breed that possessed an energy and
vivacity in their method of assaulting the person
that were incredibly effective, and which cast quite
in the shade all the efforts of their constituent
ancestors.
At five o'clock we reached the last hut just be-
neath the summit. Here we took supper. As yet
we had experienced no difficulty with our breathing.
Here we had to submit to a bitter attack from our
unrelenting enemies, the fleas. While we ate they
did likewise, and theirs was certainly the heartier
meal. Jack raved like a pirate. He scalded him-
self with some hot tea, which he very naturally up-
FUJIYAMA. 281
set during a frantic effort to reach the middle of
his back before the enemy had left the scene. But
we were comforted by the assurance that there were
no fleas upon the summit, and that we would con-
sequently have a refreshing night's rest. Up to
this last hut these vile tormentors do not find the
weather too severe for them to pursue their preda-
tory habits, but upon the summit they are com-
pelled to succumb to the cold. Upon that spot
you stand in the only place in the empire where
fleas do not exist. But fifteen minutes' climbing
lifts you from torments to serene bliss.
. Leaving the eighth resting place at a quarter to
six o'clock, we proceeded to climb the last stage of
the ascent, which required about fifteen minutes of
exceedingly steep and arduous work ; and at six
o'clock we stood upon the summit. But what a
summit it was! Totally different from our expec-
tations. Seen from a distance, the top of Fujiyama
seems to be perfectly flat. We had expected to
find a sort of plateau with a kind of depression in
the center caused by the crater. But we found
the summit to be a rugged country. It was three
miles in circumference, and was covered with lava
hills, one of which was two hundred feet high at
least. The crater was encircled by these hills, and
was about two miles in circumference. It was not
over two hundred feet deep and was entirely in-
active.
We found quite a village of huts built of lava
rocks. Hundreds of pilgrims were occupying them.
282 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
The proprietors of these quasi hotels bring every-
thing up from the base of the mountain, and, from
a native stand-point, keep a pretty fair larder. As
a matter of course, everything is expensive. It
costs fifty cents to pass the night on the summit.
This is very fabulous indeed for people who can be
accommodated at any of the ordinary hotels within
the empire for only twelve cents per night including
supper and breakfast.
We found a corner of one of the huts unoccupied,
and at once appropriated it to our own use. While
the boy was preparing supper, we rambled over the
hills and bowlders, viewing the matchless scenery.
We found it necessary to wrap ourselves up warmly,
as it was exceedingly cold. A scum of ice was
already forming on the water in the pails. Al-
though the atmosphere was very rare, yet we did
not experience any difficulty with our respiratory
organs. This was probably due to the fact that
our lungs were very sound.
The view from the summit of Fujiyama is mag-
nificent beyond description. On one hand you
have the Pacific Ocean, and on the other hand you
have thirteen provinces of Nippon. You become
dizzy as you gaze down the steep sides of the cone,
over its sable girdle of woods, and upon the slopes
at its base. It is terribly precipitous. You feel as
if you could jump down upon the empire. Thou-
sands of feet beneath you the clouds and the even-
ing mists are beginning to gather around the
mountain side. They mass themselves in huge
FUJIYAMA. 283
billows against the woods until it seems as if the
ocean itself had risen upon the mountain ; now the
upward currents of air strike the clouds from below
and they are tossed upward in huge columns like
smoke arising from some vast battle-field, — and
your view is again unobstructed. You see the
grand mountain ranges of Hakon^, colossal in
themselves, lying like dwarfed hills beneath you,
and stretching away until merged in the obscurity
that veils the horizon. In their midst lies lovely
Hakon6 Lake like a mirror in the hills. As far as
you can see, to the east and to the south, are
mountain ranges diversified with sweet valleys and
lovely lakes.
The setting sun tinges this landscape with somber
hues, and the deepening shades of twilight steal-
thily sweep the entire scene from your view. Hun-
dreds of pilgrims are now standing around in many
groups, chanting prayers, clapping their hands, and
bowing their heads in reverence of the magnificent
scene. Perhaps you imagine that they are worship-
ing the setting sun. But they do not know them-
selves what they are adoring. The beauty and
the solemnity of the occasion would of themselves
naturally call forth spontaneous expressions of
superstitious admiration from simple-minded peas-
ants. Here was the monster that, but a few years
before, had sent forth a mighty stream of fire and
smoke thousands of feet into the air. It covered
the country with stones and ashes for nearly a hun-
dred miles around. It roared, and thundered, and
284 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
quaked. The surrounding country was terribly
shaken. Yeddo was thrown to the ground, and
was burnt up ; while over twenty thousand of its
inhabitants were destroyed in the frightful disaster.
Yet here lay the crater peaceful and harmless be-
side us! Where had the terrible and mysterious
power gone? What wonder that the untutored
minds of the people were smitten with reverential
awe when in the presence of such surroundings?
Here reposed serenely beneath their tread the crest
that had beckoned the fleets of Perry and had
guided the navies of the empire.
We picked our way back to the hut and effect-
ually demolished the supper prepared for us by
the boy. Hiring several comforters from the land-
lord, we burrowed beneath them and slept soundly
enough. In the morning we rose to see sunrise.
The scene differed totally from that of sunset.
The billowy clouds lay banked from the base of
the cone to the horizon in every direction, just as
if the ocean had risen up during the night. We
were several thousand feet above them in clear air.
Suddenly the clouds parted about midway toward
the eastern horizon and the rays of the glorious sun
shot through into our upper atmosphere, suffus-
ing the cone with a gauzy, tremulous light, exqui-
sitely weird and fascinating. The clouds soon
rolled away to the horizon and we had the heavenly
panorama of the previous evening spread around
us.
In this rare atmosphere, the rays of the sun are
FUJIYAMA, 285
very powerful. While we kept within the shade,
we were blue with cold ; yet when we allowed the
sun to shine directly upon us, we could almost feel
its rays blistering our skin.
Breakfasting as well as we could with chattering
teeth, we proceeded to descend the cone on the
landward side toward Shubashiri, the town whence
almost all foreigners start to climb up. We made
the descent within four hours. We ran nearly all
the way down. We rushed down the cone at a
fearful rate, taking long jumps and landing knee-
deep in cinders and ashes. Jack, in one of his fly-
ing jumps went over a huge bowlder into a group
of pilgrims climbing upward. How in the world
he avoided killing or maiming some of them is a
mystery to me. Two of them were knocked down
outright. One of them picked himself up with a
grunt and went on his way. The other one took
to his heels in great terror at the strange apparition
of a heavily bearded head, a long body, and a pair
of mammoth boots, all clattering down the rocks
without any apparent intelligence to guide their
wild career. And he was in a fair way to beat the
record down to Shubashiri when the shouts and
laughter of his companions recalled him. Poor
fellow ! He was as pale as death. He had never
seen a foreigner before, and such an abrupt intro-
duction rather unsettled his nerves. He did not
show even a scratch, yet he had been thrown upon
his back while his heels had been kicked into the
air with such force that one of his sandals had been
286 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
hurled into a neighboring ravine ! He said that the
only thing that frightened him was the shaggy-
beard of the Ejinsan. He did not know what to
make of it ; and as he wa§ pressed for time for re-
flection, he acted upon the impulse of the moment
and made for home.
The ascent of Fujiyama is by no means a dan-
gerous or very difficult one. Provided sufficient
time be taken, almost any one possessing average
powers of endurance can scale it. Thousands of
pilgrims climb up every year. Many of these are
old men. Many of them are women. We saw an
old woman on the summit, who was said to be
eighty years of age. I have no reason to doubt
that she was.
Lunching at Shubashiri, we pushed on to Ha-
kon6 in the afternoon, arriving there in the night.
We stopped at a hotel on the border of the lake.
Above the mountains encircling the opposite shore
of the lake, rose the cone of Fuji, continually re-
minding me during my stay at this delightful sum-
mer resort, of one of the pleasantest trips I have
ever made. Lovely Fuji ! Farewell !
Yours truly,
Theophilus Pratt.
LETTER XVII.
THE SATSUMA REBELLION.
Kioto, November i, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
The Satsuma Rebellion, which has been raging
since the beginning of the year, is now ended. As
the theater of war was limited to the Island of
Kiushiu, we have seen nothing of it. Nor has it
been an easy matter to collect reliable information,
as the reticent government officials were the princi-
pal reporters of the military operations. For eight
terrible months the Imperial troops have been
struggling with the rebels, shut in by the moun-
tains and hemmed in by the sea, while we foreign-
ers have been left to gather information as best we
could. However, by means of the Yokohama news-
papers, and by conversation with those returning
from the scene of hostilities, I have been able to
follow the course of affairs pretty well.
This war was the dying struggle of Feudalism
with Imperialism. It was a contest quite as mo-
mentous to the destiny of the Japanese Empire
as was, to us, our rebellion of 1 861. The Imperial
Government had long been expecting the outbreak,
therefore they were to a certain extent prepared
288 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
for it. Yet, as with us in our war, they did not
anticipate so fearful a conflict.
The soul of the rebellion was the elder Saigo.
The Satsuma clan, of which he was a member, were
the rebels. Saigo was the ideal of feudal chivalry.
He was admired and feared, not only by his own
clan, but by all Japanese. All that was brave,
shrewd, and magnanimous, was attributed to him.
He was the ideal samurai^ — typical of all that was
noble and grand in Japanese estimation. He was
considered the ablest soldier in the empire. Dur-
ing the war of the restoration, nine years ago, he
led the Imperial forces against the Shogun, and
vanquished him. As that war is but a prelude to
the present conflict, I will briefly outline it here.
At the commencement of that struggle, the em-
peror was in the Gosho (Imperial castle in Kioto)
under the surveillance of Tokugawa, who yet con-
trolled the Imperial person. He filled the castle
of Kioto with his retainers. Prestige rested on
his banners. He was the authorized ruler of the
empire. Those who disobeyed his orders were
rebels and traitors. But his authority, while not
yet openly defied, was barely tolerated by Satsuma,
Tosa, and Choshiu. These mutinous and powerful
clans were gathering their warriors around the
Gosho ostensibly to present certain petitions to the
emperor, but with the secret intention of wresting
the Imperial person from the Shogun's grasp and
making him the actual sovereign of the realm. Until
they could accomplish this adroit diplomatic stroke
THE SATSUMA REBELLION. 289
their status was that of rebels and traitors; but with
the Imperial person in their possession, they could
obtain a revocation of the Shogun's authority to
rule the empire, and could strip him of all his emol-
uments and power. Satsuma and his allies would
then be the enforcers of the Imperial decrees ;
while the Shogun and his allies would be rebels
and traitors if they disobeyed the Imperial man-
dates.
For months the hostile clans were busily occu-
pied in collecting their forces around Kioto. Aidzu
and Tokugawa gathered theirs from the north ; and
Tosa, Choshiu, and Satsuma hurried theirs up from
the southwest. As yet there were no open hos-
tilities, but the hostile retainers glared savagely at
each other in the streets. It needed but a spark
to kindle the flames of civil war. Saigo and Kirino
were on hand fuming for a favorable opportunity
to commence the strife, and the opportunity soon
came. Kirino precipitated the conflict by expelling
the Shogun's forces from the vicinity of the Gosho,
and securing the " legal grip " of the emperor's
person. After a series of desperate encounters, the
Imperialists drove the Shogun's forces south of
Fusim6 toward Osaca. Here they rallied and were
led back to Fusim^, with heavy reinforcements,
where they were met by Saigo's forces in the rice-
fields. It is said that on this occasion Saigo, by
superior strategy, defeated thirty thousand troops
with only seven thousand men. The larger body
of soldiers found it almost impossible to deploy
19
290 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
in the slushy fields. Saigo therefore enveloped the
heads of the long columns with nimble skirmishers
that speedily dissolved the huge and unwieldy mas-
ses into a routed rabble.
The Shogun fled in wild disorder to Kob6, where
he embarked for Yeddo on an American steamer,
and, retiring to his castle at Shidzuoka, he took no
further part in the contest. But his followers kept
up the fight for a year. They were driven slowly
northward into Yesso, where they were finally
vanquished. The Province of Aidzu was terribly
punished for its obstinate resistance. Sword and
flame followed that hardy clan into its mountain
home in the north, and reaped a fearful harvest
among the peaceful villages and hamlets of that
grandly mountainous Daimiate.
At the close of hostilities, Saigo, instead of in-
dulging in promiscuous proscription of the hostile
leaders, magnanimously pardoned them. This act
endeared him greatly to the people, and made him
the most popular man in the empire.
Satsuma now became the Imperial pet. Favors
without number were showered upon that war-
like clan. Saigo was made generalissimo of the
Imperial forces. The highest offices in the realm
were filled by Satsuma men. It seemed as if
too much could not be done for this clan. Its
slightest frown would apparently fill the Imperial
bosom With great solicitude, and the will of Saigo
became law. His family was exalted ; his friends
commanded the finest appointments at the empe-
THE SATSUMA REBELLION, 29 1
ror*s disposal ; the army, the navy, and the civil
service were filled with Satsuma men.
At the same time it must be conceded that the
Satsuma men were exceedingly brave and capable.
Years of independence had developed in them ex-
ecutive abilities not attained by less favored clans
that had been subjected to the immediate control
of the hectoring Shogun. The Satsuma samurai
were certainly clever, daring, and hospitable. At
the outbreak of hostilities, Satsuma was generally
conceded to be more than a match for any clan
in the empire. And, by the close of the war,
the ardent members of that clan began to consider
themselves a match for the empire itself.
The bestowal of so much honor upon Satsuma
naturally excited the jealousy of other clans by no
means deficient in able men. As the government
became firmer, this monopoly of Satsuma began to
be abridged, and men from other clans were also fa-
vored with honors. And it soon became apparent
that the power of Satsuma had ceased to be om-
nipotent. Although the members of that warlike
clan did not exactly relish this state of affairs, yet
they possessed too much good sense to take as yet
any serious offense at the way the tide was turning.
When the government, in 1870, abolished feudal-
ism, and dispossessed the Daimios of their Daimi-
ates, Satsuma obediently fell into line and supported
the new regime. During the rebellions in Saga and
in Choshiu, the allegiance of Satsuma remained
unshaken.
292 LET TERS FROM JAPAN,
But at last the conservative spirits of Satsuma
became discontented. They stood aghast at the
rapid strides civilization was making. They saw
feudalism and old Japan drifting hopelessly out of
sight. Truly the old days were never to return !
The privileges of the samurai were being curtailed.
Centralization had set toward the Tokio Govern-
ment, and in a few years the glory of Satsuma would
be merged in the empire, — its resplendent individu-
ality would be a matter of history. Deep and omi-
nous mutterings were heard. For two years before
the actual commencement of hostilities, it was evi-
dent that a tremendous conflict was brewing be-
tween the conservative and the liberal elements in
Japan. Nevertheless the government steadily pur-
sued its policy of introducing whatever it found
worth imitating in the customs of foreign countries
into the political and social fabric of the new Japan.
At last the great Saigo grew sullen. He with-
drew from Tokio and went to Kagoshima, the capi-
tal of Satsuma. To a great extent this province
was quite independent of the government in the
management of its internal affairs. Thither flocked
the dissatisfied Satsuma men. The locality was emi-
nently adapted as a place for brewing sedition, as
it was perfectly free from government surveillance,
and by the beginning of this year Saigo and Sat-
suma were in full revolt.
It was fortunate for the government that all the
leading men of Satsuma did not go into revolt. It
was a noticeable fact that those who had been
THE SATSUMA REBELLION, 293
abroad and had obtained liberal ideas were loyal to
the emperor. The younger Saigo remained stead-
fast in his allegiance. So did Okubo, the Minister
of War. But, above all, the navy, filled with Sat-
suma men, and commanded by a Satsuma man, re-
mained faithful. Had the fleet not prevented the
rebels from reaching the mainland, the issue of the
conflict would have indeed been doubtful. Had
Saigo been able to hurl twenty-five thousand men
upon Kioto or Tokio, it would have been a black
day for the government. With the navy at his dis-
posal, the empire would have been at his merey.
Great was the terror throughout the empire when
it became known that Satsuma and the great Saigo
had rebelled against the government. The very
name of Saigo was a tower of strength to the cause
that he advocated. His personal magnetism and
popularity were unbounded. The government
feared Satsuma less than they did that one man. I
was in Tokio at the outbreak of the war, and can
well remember the fear that pervaded all classes.
Many feared that Saigo would appear in Tokio in
a few days, leading on his fierce followers to plunder
and proscription. The emperor and his court
hastily went to Kioto, and awaited there the issue
of the conflict. The wildest stories were afloat. It
was reported that the frogs on the western shore of
some pond had been engaged in warfare with the
frogs on the eastern shore of the pond, and had
vanquished them after a long struggle. " Ah ! "
said the superstitious ones, " the sword-hilt is in the
294 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
West and the chrysanthemum is in the East.*'
Some one said that the heimitty or common people,
composing a large part of the Imperial forces, would
never be able to face the samurai of Satsuma, —
that one saimirai would put five hcimin to flight ;
and as the troops marched through Tokio on their
way south they were the recipients of pitying com-
ments signifying that they were but so much meat
for Saigo's swords.
It was now time for the men of Aidzu to have
their revenge on Satsuma. They eagerly volun-
teered their services and flocked to the death-
grapple with their ancient enemies. Many wild
young samurai of other clans also enlisted from
mere love of fighting, and many others went in
on principles of general hatred for Satsuma. These
fierce warriors, trained from boyhood to the expert
use of the formidable double-handed swords, were
valuable auxiliaries to the government in the moun-
tains and ravines of Kiushiu, where hand-to-hand
conflicts were fierce and frequent.
Early in January Saigo took the initiative. De-
spairing of winning over the navy, he marched his
troops northward into the Province of Higo. I
presume that his precise plans will never be known.
Some say that his object was to conquer the Island
of Kiushiu and proclaim it an independent repub-
lic ; others said that he intended to march rapidly
to the Shimonos^ki Straits and cross over to the
mainland before the fleet could intercept him ;
once on the mainland, and his prospects were flat-
THE SAT SUM A REBELLION. 295
tering of raising the entire country in revolt and of
working his way to Kioto and Tokio with ranks
ever swelling with malcontents ; while others said
that he was short in his supply of arms and ammu-
nition and desired to equip his forces at the maga-
zines in Kumamoto Castle in the northern part of
Higo, about seventy miles north of Kagoshima.
I think the last theory is not improbable. And
it is quite likely that after overrunning Kiushiu
they would have declared an independent form of
government of some description, with Saigo at its
head. Could they but capture the castle with
a bold dash they would start with grand prestige,
and would also have a stronghold in a wild and
mountainous country from which to operate upon
any part of Kiushiu. The troops were consequently
hurried forward with great speed. Although it
was midwinter, yet the roads of that country were
entirely free from snow. The winters of southern
Japan are lovely beyond description.
Satsuma was reputed to be able to muster sixty
thousand warriors; Saigo's forces, however, did
not exceed twenty thousand men, so far as I can
ascertain. Kumamoto Castle was garrisoned by
about three thousand troops, and it was well sup-
plied with military stores. Strategically consid-
ered, the point was of vast importance ; for until
the place had been captured no army from Sat-
suma could get to Shimonos^ki Straits, or operate
elsewhere upon the island with any degree of suc-
cess. The Imperial Government was well aware
296 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
of this fact and had evidently well prepared the
place for a violent attack.
Saigo's men were but partly armed with rifles.
The most of them were equipped with the keen
double-handed swords of feudal times, and with
daggers and spears. It seemed to be their opinion
that patrician samurai could rush into close quar-
ters with the hcimin and easily rout them — grant-
ing even that they were armed with rifles and bay-
onets. And it was reported that the astute Saigo
ordered his soldiers not to kill the poor plebs
in the government ranks, but rather to slash them
well about the legs so as to disable them and ren-
der it necessary for each man thus wounded to be
borne off the field by two able-bodied comrades —
thus depriving the opposing ranks of three soldiers
instead of one. This policy argued to the native
mind a keen insight into the military qualities of
the hcimin.
There can be no doubt, however, that Saigo led
up against Kumamoto from i$,ooo to 20,000 as
brave and desperate men as Japan could furnish,
and, as for that matter, as formidable an array as
any troops would care to face. Upon their ban-
ners w^s inscribed the suggestive motto, '* If we
conquer y we arc Imperialists ; but if we are van-
quished, then are we rebels'' In Japan, even, success
constitutes the difference between patriots and
traitors.
As everything depended upon celerity of action,
Saigo hurled his forces fiercely upon Kumamoto.
THE SATSUMA REBELLION, 297
The town and the suburbs were speedily reduced to
ashes, but the troops within the castle repelled all
assaults with the most unexpected bravery, pug-
nacity, and skill. They fought magnificently. In
the first place, they were well protected by massive
walls and towers from which they could use their
deadly rifles with terrible effect upon the ranks be-
neath, and in the second place, they were officered
by brave and skillful samurai^ who filled them with
courage and pugnacity by their example. Upon
their stubborn resistance hung the issue of the war.
In vain did Saigo clamor at the gates and hurl his
legions against the walls. His slaughtered warriors
filled the moats and ravines to no purpose. It
must have been with boundless chagrin that he
found himself compelled to settle down to a long
siege of this impregnable place. His only hope
was either to take the garrison by surprise, or to
starve them out. On several occasions his soldiers
endeavored to scale the ramparts at night, when
the absence of daylight would render the rifles less
deadly until close quarters had been reached, when
they hoped to sweep away the hostile plebs with
a few cuts with their blades. But every assault
failed. The garrison was always on the qui vive^
and it was found that swords and bayonets were
not wanting skillful hands to ply them within the
Imperial ranks when it came to a question of close
quarters.
On one occasion, two hundred of the most des-
perate of Saigo's men pledged themselves to either
298 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
make a lodgment within the castle or to perish in
the attempt. They chose a dark and stormy night
for the desperate venture. Stripping off their
clothes, and taking their swords in their hands, they
crept through the gloom toward the fatal moat.
None of them ever came back ; and, next morning,
the Imperial banners, floating defiantly above the
turrets, seemed to invite other bands of fanatics to
enter the slaughter pen and be butchered with rifle,
revolver, bayonet, and sword.
Every day spent in besieging the castle lessened
Saigo's chances of success in his enterprise. The
government forces were being hurried from all
parts of the empire, and were rapidly closing in
around Kumamoto.
Saigo found that he would soon be environed by
the Imperial troops. He decided to turn upon
them and rout them before they had quite hemmed
him in. Leaving a small force to watch the castle,
he marched to the northward to meet the advanc-
ing forces. He came in collision with them among
some mountains and rice-fields. A series of terrible
conflicts ensued. The Imperial troops found great
difficulty in deploying in the soft mud and narrow
ravines. Before they had forced their way through
this section of the country they had suffered heavy
losses. They were constantly exposed to the at-
tacks of nimble bands of samurai springing from
every spot suitable for ambush. . Hurling them-
selves madly against the troops, they often created
sad havoc with their swords among the disordered
THE SAT SUM A REBELLION. 299
crowds weakened by toilsome marching through a
broken country. It is said that in the earlier en-
counters the Imperial troops were badly decimated
by these sudden onslaughts, and it is not to be won-
dered at, for these expert swordsmen can make a
bad mess in a confused crowd.
When Sir Harry Parkes visited the emperor at
Kioto several years ago, his twelve dragoons, armed
with lances, sabres, and revolvers, were attacked by
two fanatics who suddenly sprang upon them from
an alley. So quick were they in their movements
that nine of the men were disabled with frightful
gashes in an incredibly short space of time. The
fanatics would have escaped without a scratch had
they not been cut down by a couple of Japanese
accompanying the body-guard.
But while the Imperialists lost heavily, the rebels
also suffered severely. They found that the heunin
possessed much obstinate pugnacity, even if they
did not possess the dashing bravery of the samurai.
In addition to all this, the Imperial forces were
being constantly reinforced, while Saigo found it
almost impossible to raise recruits just as soon as it
became manifest that he was playing a losing game.
He soon found himself facing overwhelming num-
bers. After several weeks of hard fighting, the
rebels were forced back upon their lines at Kuma-
moto. They found themselves in a state of siege.
For many weeks they kept up the unequal contest
from behind their breastworks and trenches. The
Imperialists held them there at bay while they
300 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
sent troops into their rear to cut off their supplies.
And, to make matters yet more hopeless, Saigo
now found his supply of ammunition nearly ex-
hausted. His hopes of success were completely
blasted, yet he determined to continue the struggle.
Finding himself nearly surrounded, he raised the
siege of Kumamoto Castle, and betook himself
with his remaining followers to the most moun-
tainous and inaccessible parts of Kiushiu, and there
kept up an annoying guerrilla warfare for many
months. At last his indojnitable energy seemed to
weary of the useless contest. Every hope was ex-
tinguished. He resolved to lead his followers back
to Kagoshima and die in a last desperate struggle
at home. Breaking away from his pursuers, who
had chased him from place to place with the great-
est persistency, he passed rapidly into Satsuma, in
the vicinity of Kagoshima, upon which he des-
cended like an avalanche, driving out the few sol-
diers that the government had left there. The
astonished Imperialists, however, speedily recovered
from the bewilderment produced by this sudden
onset, and speedily collected thirty thousand troops
around the unhappy rebels.
Then came the closing scene. A friend of mine,
who was in command of one of the steamers in the
harbor, gave me a full account of it. "The Im-
perial forces," said he, *' numbered fully thirty
thousand men. The rebel army had dwindled
down to six hundred men. They were intrenched
upon a hill-side in the immediate vicinity of the
THE SATSUMA REBELLION. 30I
town. At daybreak I was awaked by some heavy
rifle firing, and was told that Saigo was being
routed out of his den on the hill-side. Climbing the
mast, I could see large detachments of government
troops busily at work. With my glasses, I could
see bodies of men (rebels I presume) scampering
over the hill in all directions. They were evidently
entirely without ammunition, and were being butch-
ered mercilessly by the troops, who could shoot
them down at a distance with rare impunity.
Within an hour, everything was over. When
things had quieted down, I went ashore with a
Japanese officer to see what we could.
*' Everything seemed quiet and orderly. The sol-
diers were demurely standing by their arms in line
of battle. There were fully thirty thousand of
them, all armed with rifles. They completely sur-
rounded the hill upon which Saigo had been in-
trenched. In many places they had constructed
bamboo fences around the hill — so much did they
fear that this terrible Saigo would again break
through and escape. But he and his chiefs all lay
dead upon the hill. We passed through the lines,
and went to where they were all laid out in a row.
They had evidently committed suicide. Saigo had
performed the hara-kiri. A friend had then cut off
his head and was running away with it when inter-
cepted. His body was a large and fine one. Upon
the breast stood the gory head of its unfortunate
possessor. We stood for quite a while watching
the crowds of Imperial officers that came up. This
302 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
man had been their commander-in-chief for many
years, and the old feeling of respect and admiration
for him was yet uppermost in their minds. As
each one recognized the features of Saigo in the
ghastly scene before him, he instinctively saluted
the corpse by touching his cap. They conversed
in subdued tones, and seemed to be sincerely sorry
that it had been necessary to sacrifice so fine a
man."
And so ended the Satsuma Rebellion. It cost
the government upward of fifteen million dollars
to quell it. To us this sum seems small enough, but
it is a very heavy load for Japan, I can assure you.
It was a cause of grim satisfaction to the rebels
that they had at least inflicted heavy losses on
their enemies. The government lost upward of
fifteen thousand men in battle ; which, con-
sidering that they had only about forty thousand
men in the field, is a tremendous percentage. But
the benefits resulting from the war will be substan-
tial and far-reaching. The government can now
exercise control over the internal affairs of Satsuma,
and that spirited little province will cease to be a
hot-bed of sedition. The Japanese Empire is now
an established fact.
Yours truly,
Theophilus Pratt.
KlINS Oh
THR llTADKI < >K AlDZl' L AMI t.
LETTER XVIII.
HIYEISAN.
Kioto, November lo, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
One of the most enjoyable excursions in the
vicinity of Kioto is the trip to the summit of
Hiyeisan, a mountain of almost solid granitic for-
mation, situated about eight miles north-east of the
city and overlooking Lake Biwa from an altitude
of nearly five thousand feet. It was the scat of
one of the finest Buddhist monasteries in Japan.
Its priesthood contained over five thousand mem-
bers. They owned the entire mountain and much
of the territory around its base. At one time they
are said to have levied tribute from some of the
adjoining provinces. In those days of their
power they bade defiance from their rocky eyrie
to the Shoguns themselves. But about three-
hundred years ago they were totally vanquished
by Nobunaga, the Shogun preceding Hid^yoshi.
Since that time, repeated humiliations have crushed
their towering ambition. Their monastery is now
almost deserted : but its surroundings and its his-
tory are nevertheless exceedingly interesting. I
304 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
will, in connection with a description of the monas-
tery, take this occasion to give you a few observa-
tions upon Buddhism, derived from several years
of careful observation and eager research.
Leaving my house after breakfast, accompanied
by the boy. who carried our lunch in a basket, we
walked through several miles of fields and gardens
until we came to the hills at the base of the moun-
tain. The intervening country was beautiful. As
we rose above the foot-hills and surrounding moun-
tains, we obtained a view of the Yamashiro Val-
ley, that was lovely beyond description. Kioto,
embowered in groves and gardens, lay far beneath
us beside the glittering shoals of the Kamogawa.
There lay the religious heart of the empire, sur-
rounded by its temples and shrines. The road up
the mountain was well shaded and plentifully suj>-
plied with delightful springs of water bubbling up
from numerous granite basins.
The scenery from every point was superb. The
slopes were deeply wooded and formed safe retreats
for wild deer and boars ; and the glorious pheasants,
startled by our footsteps, whirred past us ever and
anon.
Just before reaching the monastery, we had a
view of Lake Biwa, that was surpassingly lovely.
This lake is lovelier than Lake George ; and it is
nearly twice as large. The scenery around its
shores is far grander. The lake, with its inclosing
mountains, forms a huge basin constituting Omi
Province. The blue water lies beneath us, bearing
HIYEISAN. 305
on its bosom boats and steamers. Spread around
the shores are lovely green fields and villages. I
have seen grander scenery in Japan, but there is
none more beautiful than the glimpses of Lake
Biwa as seen through the trees from the sides of
Hiyeisan.
Turning a sharp bend in the road, we come in
view of the monastery in the forests of magnificent
cryptomeria among whose topmost branches the
roofs may be seen like dovecotes in the trees.
Although the mountain was an inexhaustible quarry
of granite, yet the builders of the temples never
used a bit of stone in their buildings. Everything
was made of wood. In the old days the monastery
had scores of huge temples all through these superb
groves up here within this lovely vale, and within
half an hour's climb of the summit, and shrines
innumerable were scattered along the roadside
away down to the foot-hills.
The monastery, in the days of its prosperity,
was indeed a magnificent institution. From it, as a
center, roads branched out into all the provinces
around the base of the mountain. The abbot
claimed the entire mountain and liberal slices of
adjoining territory. His shaven emissaries made
regular circuits of his little realm, collecting the
revenues and superintending matters generally.
He was a great power in the land, not only dictating
terms to the neighboring Daimios, but frequently
waging successful war against them. The abbot
had a very elastic title. The legends report that
20
306 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
an ancient monk requested from the authorities
some land upon the mountain, whereon to build a
shrine in honor of Shaka (Buddha). He desired as
much land as his mat would cover. This apparently-
modest request was readily granted. Whereupon
the mat, upon which the monk was sitting, began
to spread out in every direction, by means of super-
natural influences, until it had covered the entire
mountain, thus securing by this pious fraud an
immense piece of territory. Should this abstract
of title fail to convince the incredulous, the legen-
dary archives furnish another title, to the effect
that the monk was decreed as much land as he
could reach with his staff while he stood still.
Whereupon the stick began to lengthen until it
reached the foot-hills, thus including the mountain
within its scope. Should either of these claims
fail to convince, I doubt not but what the incredu-
lous will find an inexhaustible supply of titles within
the monastic archives from which to choose.
Centuries ago, when the monastery was founded,
the mountain was wild and rugged enough. Pine,
oak, beech, kayaki (the finest hard wood in Japan),
maple, and bamboo trees covered the slopes and
cliffs, while impenetrable underbrush filled the rav-
ines. Monkeys filled the forests,and wild boars,deer,
bears, and panthers rendered the place a grand hunt-
ing-ground for valorous Daimios from the adjoin-
ing provinces. It was truly a wild and magnificent
country. But in the course of years the undergrowth
was cleared away from the vicinity of the monastery,
HIYEISAN. 307
and thousands of cryptomeria were planted there,
which in a few years embowered the whole vale and
plateau in their cool embrace. Roads were laid
out through the forests on all sides. They wound
around the spurs, zig zagged down the slopes, and
hugged the edges of the ravines, until they emerged
into the green fields. The waters of the delicious
springs that had erstwhile trickled through the
rocks into the brooks gushing from the mountain
side, were zealously captured and imprisoned for
awhile within the stone fountains by the roadside,
where the weary pilgrims could drink of them and
be refreshed. Eligible localities were selected for
booths, where the travelers could with a glance
take in the Eden-like beauties of Yamashiro, or the
sparkling glories of Omi clasped with emerald fields
and sunk thousands of feet within the rugged
mountains. From these eyries you can view with
solemn feelings the majesty of the parting day as
the shadows, lingering upon the mountain sides,
stealthily creep over the fields upon the blue waves
beneath, where scudding boats are flying homeward
on bended wings. Here the moonlight and the
zephyrs, sporting with the somber hues of night,
seem to tremble at the mellow notes of the match-
less bells tolling in the belfries of the monastery.
Here the tired pilgrim can drink in the beauties of
nature, while his nerves, cooled by the delicious
water and the fragrant winds, are eminently suscep-
tible to the sublime influences and the grand inspira-
tions of the surroundings. Three times have I
3o8 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
climbed Hiyeisan, and yet do not find myself tired
of its scenery.
The fame and popularity of the monastery spread
through the entire country. Thousands of pil-
grims enriched its coffers with their contributions.
Princes were votaries at its shrines, being desirous
of propitiating the unseen powers of this world and
those of the next — whatever they might be. New
temples of vast proportions and elegant design
were put up. Innumerable shrines for the propitia-
ting of every conceivable influence in the Buddhist
calendar were scattered everywhere, so that the
throngs could take measures to ward off all imagin-
able ills that might be lying in ambush against them.
The simple quarters of the primitive anchorites de-
veloped into luxurious and commodious establish-
ments. The clothing of the monks became elegant,
and the food became rich. Sak^ became a common
beverage. The fatted fellows too often spent their
evenings in drunken stupor instead of religious
meditation. The strict vegetarian diet of their
sect was discarded, and flesh, fish, and fowl were
abundantly partaken of to the great scandal of
the orthodox brethren, who abstained from eating
anything that had been animated with the breath
of life. In those bacchanalian times, you doubtless
would have seen the bald-headed monks sallying
forth to hunt the beasts upon the mountain with
spears and arrows. Ah ! those were indeed roar-
ing times, Julius Marcellus.
Nor were these fatted monks satisfied with hav-
HI YE I SAN, 309
ing the monopoly of things spiritual, but they must
needs dabble in things temporal. After centuries
of uncurbed indulgence, their soaring pride and
vaunting arrogance induced them to dictate in mat-
ters relating to the State. Now, if there is any
point upon which the Japanese temporal authori-
ties are sensitive it is upon the question of their
prerogatives. Touch them there, and they blaze
with fury. Dare to question their authority over
the people, and you excite the fiercest and bitterest
passions in their natures. The bellicose brethren
of Hiyeisan might have gone on for ages whacking
each other's shins, and fetching the gore from each
other's shining pates, until every nerve in their
bodies jumped with anguish, while practicing the
intricacies of the fencing art with heavy bamboo
foils — nay, more, they might have exercised acts of
summary justice within their own domains to a lim-
ited extent without being interfered with. But when
they began to meddle in the general politics of the
neighboring regions and to fling their formidable
semi-spiritual and semi-military organization into
the balance, then was reached a point of audacity
that could not be tolerated by the ruling powers.
A wild and horrible contest ensued. Terrible
battles were fought. The fierce monks were forced
back from point to point. They were slowly pushed
into the ravines and up the slopes of Hiyeisan, stub-
bornly contesting every vantage ground. Finally
they were shut within the walls of their monastery,
where they were well-nigh annihilated ; and the
3 1 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
magnificent monastery was razed to the ground.
All the superb temples with their gorgeous para-
phernalia were swept out of existence. Desolation
marked the place for years.
After the assassination of the terrible Nobunaga,
those monks that had escaped the sword timidly
came back to their mountain home and began to
build again. In a few years the ancient glories
of the place began to revive ; but the monastery
never again attained its former magnificence. The
buildings, though grand, were not as magnificent
as those of yore. The monks were never as numer-
ous as in old times ; nor did they develop the mili-
tary traits that characterized them before their
fearful humiliation and decimation. The place,
however, soon became a great Buddhist monastery,
and a popular resort for pilgrims.
But the monastery of to-day is almost deserted.
Since the disestablishment of the Buddhist religion
as a state religion, the funds have been cut off ; and
the revenues collected from the pilgrims during the
summer are insufficient to keep up the establish-
ment. While many pilgrims may visit the shrines,
yet, being but poor peasants, but little money is
dropped into the coffers by them. The monastery
always depended for its chief support upon dona-
tions from the wealthy classes, who now have cast
aside their ancient creeds and stand forth as arrant
atheists. But even the present temples are worth
inspecting. Although not so exquisite as those of
Nikko, nor so majestic as those of Kioto, yet they
HI Y EI SAN,
311
are splendid specimens of native architecture, and
the grounds of the monastery are lovely even in
their unkept condition. From many parts of the
place you can peep through the trees upon the
blue waters of Lake Bivva, — a scene in itself suffi-
cient to repay you for the exertions of the journey ;
and if you will go beyond the monastery and
climb the summit behind it, you will obtain a
splendid view of the surrounding country, extend-
ing as far as Osaca Bay on the south (which may
be seen on a clear day), and as far as the mountains
of Echizen on the north ; while to the east and
west endless mountain ranges stretch toward the
horizon.
The Buddhists are the champion monastery
builders of the world. In the rugged mountains
of Thibet, in Ceylon, in the islands south of Asia,
in the vast provinces of China, and in Japan, you
will find these stately and elaborate institutions
wherever an exceptionally lovely locality is to be
found. Many centuries ago have these nature-
loving anchorites pre-empted all the choice spots.
And it must be conceded that they have rendered
great service to mankind by beautifying spots and
localities that otherwise would have remained wild
fastnesses, and by cultivating the aesthetic part of
human nature, by holding Nature herself in her
loveliest moods before its gaze. Who can doubt
that the thousands of peasants, who have left the
slime of their native fields and the miasmas of their
filthy villages, and have visited these cool retreats
312 LE TTERS PROM JAPAN,
in clean vesture for a few days during the sultry
summer, go back to their drudgery with more
cheerful minds and with a few fresh ideas about
the lovely world beyond the borders of their
wretched hamlets ?
Love for nature is one of the characteristic ideas
of Buddhism. Shaka himself was powerfully in-
fluenced by it. The son of a king, brought up amid
luxury and refinement, possessing a sensitive and
sympathetic nature, and gifted with a keen and
philosophic mind rarely found in one of his rank,
he is suddenly brought in repulsive contact with
human misery. The reaction upon his nature was
intense. It produced melancholy meditation and a
violent distaste for the garish frivolities of the sen-
suous court in which he had been brought up.
Meditation begat a thirst for further facts relating to
the affairs of human life. He flies from the court
and its hateful associations. He wanders about
among men, and becomes familiar with the details
of human life. With his mind well stored with ac-
curate facts, and with his heart sickened with scenes
of cruelty and misery, he left the society of men
and fled to the solitudes of nature, hoping there to
generalize upon the facts he had collected, and to
evolve some supreme principle, some great and
general law that should regulate human passions
and cruelty, and thus lessen the terrible misery of
mankind that he saw prevailing everywhere.
After years of profound thought, he evolved the
grand idea that if men would be merciful to all liv-
HIYEISAN. 313
ing creatures, then the suffering in this world would
be greatly reduced. Carrying out this idea into
practice, he formed a law to the effect that no creat-
ure animated with life should be killed. This, he
thought, would prevent homicide and the needless
slaying of dumb creatures. Evolving yet further
from his soulful meditations, he conceived the idea
that for man to live above the miseries of this life
and to obtain an exemption from miseries hereafter,
it was necessary for him to eliminate from his mind
all thoughts and desires whatsoever,, to make his
mind a void and keep it in that condition until utter
mental abstraction had been attained. Then, in the
course of years, when the body died, the mind
would merge into nothingness, — the original con-
dition of the universe, according to his ideas, — and
the human desires and passions, which were mere ac-
cidents of matter clogging the mind, would be anni-
hilated. And the mind would also be annihilated,
for Nirvana means nothing else.
In accordance with this theory, he enunciated
the dogma that this utter mental abstraction could
be attained before death, and whoever attained
it thus during life, would become Nirvana at death.
But that if any one neglected to attain this mental
abstraction before death, then his desires and pas-
sions would still hold his mind captive and would
force it into new forms of existence ; would pass
it through ceaseless existence for cycles of time
until it had again become endowed with the human
body, when it would have another chance for Nir-
314 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
vana ; which, if it again neglected to attain, it would
again be whirled through the ceaseless miseries of
mundane existence. In other words, existence is a
curse. Cease to exist, become Nirvana, and you
will be freed from everything.
The first proposition was better adapted to the
people. Hence we find them respecting animals
and treating them considerately. Although, as a
matter of course, some of them were killed for
food, yet, the effect of centuries of teaching was,
to make the people of Burmah, China, and Japan,
to a large extent, vegetarians. This accounts for
the rice diet, perhaps. It has also made them mild
in disposition.
The second part of the proposition could not, of
course, be fully comprehended or practiced by the
masses of the people. It was a theory brooded
upon by the monks alone. And even among them
it was a rare thing to see a monk endeavoring to
attain Nirvana. It was a mysterious doctrine that
but few of them tried to put into practice. But
should any of them ever feel disposed to put the
theory into practice, there was always the dark room
reserved for him in some secluded part of the
monastery where he could immure himself. The
natural result of trying to banish earthly cares
from their thoughts, led the monks to seek retired
localities among the mountains congenial to such
an existence. This led to a romantic and beautiful
system of monastery life, which was probably copied
by the Romish Church and introduced into Europe.
HIYEI$AN, 315
The monastic life in Japan, during the days when
Buddhism was the state religion, must have been
charming and romantic. Embowered among the
grand mountains of the empire, they were secluded
from the world, and yet exercised great influence
upon it. The faith was introduced from Corea and
China fully fourteen centuries ago, possibly earlier.
It found the people to be amiable barbarians well-
disposed to supplement their vague pastoral re-
ligion (Shintoism) with something more substantial.
Sites for temples and monasteries were speedily
selected. And in a few years, or centuries, rather,
a superb system of monasteries filled the empire
with unsurpassed beauty. Magnificent groves en-
vironed them. Cooling streams bubbled through
their spacious grounds. The deep shade and silence
of their superb forests of cryptomeria, that clothed
the mountains with stately grandeur, called up the
pensive moods of millions of pilgrims during many
centuries. All the surroundings of these grand
institutions, — the icy streams pouring from moss-
covered basins, the sweet shade, the bracing air, the
melancholy solitude, — all brought man into com-
munion with nature that could not fail to benefit
him.
Here lived the monks for centuries, high up in
the exhilarating atmosphere with their soul-stirring
surroundings. Sworn to celibacy, their ranks were
replenished with recruits from the seriously inclin-
ed members of the community, usually from the
middle classes. Fugitives from the vengeance of
3 1 6 LET TERS FROM J A PA N.
political adversaries frequently found refuge with
the brotherhood. Sometimes a man of property
would endow them with all his possessions, and
retire within their ranks to count the beads and
chant the prayers. Sometimes those saddened
by reverses and disappointed in their aspirations
slipped away from home and friends to dream
away the balance of their lives in the routine of
religious duties. But by far the larger proportion
of the brotherhood was composed of those who
had no special ambition or aim in life, and who
could be easily induced by the proselyting monks
to enter the sacred walls and be assured of a life
of comparative ease and comfort.
I am not aware that any of the monks ever at-
tained Nirvana, I do not think they were much
inclined to that sort of thing. I do not think the
happy, volatile, and inquisitive temperament of the
Japanese could ever have endured the weary years
of stupid, deadening abstraction indulged in by
Chinese and Hindoo devotees. They much pre-
ferred a life of quiet contentment, with plenty to
eat and drink, and with no anxiety about worldly
matters. Chanting the orisons at daylight, break-
fast at about seven o'clock, light household duties
during the morning hours, dinner at twelve, study,
meditation, and recreation in the afternoon, chant-
ing the vespers at sunset, and a long night for sleep,
— there you have the whole business in a nut-shell.
What an opportunity for moral and intellectual
development ! What might not have been accom-
HI Y EI SAN. 317
plished during a thousand years in the way of
enlightening the world !
Yet nothing was accomplished. Aside from
beautifying and developing temple architecture,
from creating magnificent forests and avenues
around their retreats, and instilling into the people
a certain amount of reverential awe and love for
Nature, the monks did nothing for the intellect-
ual or the moral development of Japan. They
made no inventions or discoveries in any of the
departments of science. They added nothing
of any special importance to the literature of
the empire. No agricultural improvements are
attributed to them. In no way were they con-
nected with the political advancement of the
people. Ambitionless, spiritless, deadening, their
lives were just like their creed — a hopeless
endeavor to merge existence into oblivion and
Nirvana. Their lives were perfect blanks. The
vast majority did not live by the strict rules of
their sect. They evaded almost every require-
ment. They followed the inclination of their vol-
atile natures. They indulged in the entire list of
vices. They were gamblers, libertines, drunkards,
and sodomites. Rarely would you find good and
pious men ; and these were unable to stem the tide
of corruption that prevailed in the monasteries.
Although not so warlike, the monks throughout
the empire were no better than those of Hiyeisan.
A life of utter idleness and sensuous ease, without
any elevating power in their religion sufficient to
3 1 8 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
master the bent of their passions and appetites,
completely neutralized any elevating effect de-
rivable from their lovely surroundings. What
literature they did produce consisted of wild and
improbable legends invented by their vivid imagi-
nations and tacked on to the life of Shaka, or on
to that of some canonized monk.
* There is absolutely nothing in Buddhism to
elevate mankind as the religion of Christ has done.
This conclusion, I think, is sound. It is the result
of long observation. The teachings of Shaka are
a wild dream, a weird speculation, a fantastic
theory, an ingenious hypothesis of a sincere and
noble soul blindly groping for some principle that
* In order that you may understand why the descriptive portion
of this letter should here abruptly merge into an argument, it may
be well to explain that the method of reasoning herein followed was
one evolved from many hours of animated discussion with my schol-
ars during several years of teaching. Some of my pupils were keen
and intelligent young men who had become versed in all the skep-
tical arguments of the age against Christianity. It was always un-
derstood that I, while in no sense a sectarian, was a firm believer
in the doctrines of Christ; and furthermore, that I was always ready
to take up the gauntlet in defense of my beliefs whenever a scholar
desired to discuss such subjects; provided, however, that the dis-
cussion was in legitimate connection with the lesson of the day and
did not conflict with other duties. As a matter of course, the young
men, arguing in English, did not always express themselves clearly
or idiomatically; but, after comprehending their full meaning, I
always reduced their ai^uments, as a matter of courtesy, to intelli-
gible shape, prior to combating them. The majority of their argu-
ments were weak and easily disposed of. Some of their attacks,
however, as you will probably admit in reading the balance of this
letter, were by no means easy to noeet.
HI Y EI SAN, 319
should explain the mysteries of life and death. It is
claimed by some Boston philosopher that the funda-
mental principles of Buddhism and those of Chris-
tianity are the same ; that both are identical in
underlying truths; that both are human religions,
and that the religion of Christ will not elevate the
Asiatics any more than the religion of Shaka has
done ; that each religion is specially adapted by
nature to those countries where it prevails. What
a wild statement ! No thinking and candid man
who has lived for any number of years among
Buddhists would ever say this. Nobody who
knows anything about the practical workings of
Buddhism from personal experience could ever
have the audacity to make so false a statement.
Your Boston philosopher has evidently derived all
his ideas of Buddhism from books. It is impos-
sible to account for his inaccurate conclusions in
any other way ; unless we assume that he harbors
a bitter hatred against the religion of Christ, de-
rived, as is sometimes unfortunately the case, from
bitter associations during childhood. Let us argue
this matter a little.
All institutions must be judged by their effects
or results. As it has been expressed, " from their
fruits shall ye know them." There is no other test
that can be applied. And this test is a perfectly
satisfactory one. Now, I lay down the reasonable
proposition that the object of religion is to elevate
the spiritual and moral nature of man. If it fails
to accomplish this, then what is it good for? Is it
320 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
merely to breed superstition among childish men
and women? If that is all it can accomplish, it
had better be abolished. Now let us apply this
test to the religion of Christ and to that of
Shaka.
Buddhism has been in the world about twenty-
five hundred years. It has prevailed for two
thousand years throughout all eastern Asia. The
religion of Christ has been in the world only
eighteen hundred years. It has prevailed through-
out western Europe for less than thirteen centuries.
Twenty-five centuries ago, Buddhism commenced
to operate upon people who were the most refined
and civilized in existence. They had a literature
fully two thousand years old. They had cities and
palaces of vast size and magnificence. Eighteen
centuries ago England was inhabited by a race of
tattooed savages living in caves and fens. Cities
were unknown. Marshes and dense forests covered
a group of cheerless and uninviting islands with
mists and fogs dripping from above during the
greater part of the year. The condition of Den-
mark, Germany, and France was but little better.
There were no cities, no bridges, no literature.
Forests and marshes covered the face of the
country. Fierce savages rendered these regions
more dangerous than the wild beasts. Paganism
of the grossest and stupidest description prevailed.
And Spain was not much better off. While Italy
was peopled by a race of warriors whose fierce
natures and sensuous appetites were violently hos-
HIYEISAN.
321
tile to such curbing as the teachings of Christ in-
culcated.
Now what is the moral and spiritual develop-
ment of Europe to-day as compared with that of
Asia ? Is it not immeasurably superior ? Nay, can
you compare the moral and spiritual condition of
Europe with that of Asia at all ? I think not. It
is vain and foolish to attempt to argue that the
religion of Christ has not accomplished this won-
derful change. It is silly and wicked to try to
confuse the Romish Church with Christianity, and
then urge that Christianity has retarded the de-
velopment of science and of man's intellectual and
spiritual nature. The religion of Christ, those
principU-s enunciated by Him, never were antago-
nistic to the development of human knowledge.
But, on the contrary, by purifying man's moral
nature and delivering him from the cloying ap-
petites of* his animal being, these principles, when
conscientiously practiced, have always tended to
elevate his spiritual nature and to give tone and
strength to his intellectual powers that eminently
fitted him for scientific research and profound in-
vestigation. A consistent practicing of the prin-
ciples of Christianity invariably tends to develop
man's bodily, mental, and spiritual nature. A con-
sistent practicing of Buddhism deadens and dwarfs
the bodily, the mental, and the spiritual powers of
man in a most shocking manner. In direct propor-
tion as races consistently follow the spirit of the
teachings of Christ, in the same ratio will they be-
st
32 2 LE TTEKS FROM JAPAN.
come elevated in their triple natures. This seems
to me to be a sound and logical conclusion based
upon accurate facts.
Therefore I say that facts show that the religion of
Christ, or Christianity used in my sense, has elevated
those nations consistently practicing it infinitely
above those nations consistently practicing Bud-
dhism, or the religion of Shaka. It is, therefore, the
better religion, even from this stand-point alone. If
the fundamental principles of Buddhism were the
same as those of Christianity, they would equally
have elevated the moral and spiritual nature of man,
would they not ? Those principles had a keen,
shrewd, and intelligent race to operate upon. The
races of Europe possess no faculty of mind, soul, or
body that the races of Asia are not also endowed
with. The vast difference between the European
nature and the Asiatic nature of to-day lies in the
fact that the religion of Christ has demanded the
development of a higher set of faculties and quali-
ties than Buddhism has called for. A thousand
years spent in developing these nobler elements of
the soul has resulted in the evolution of a race
whose social, political, and moral instincts are so
infinitely superior to those of Asia that you would
hardly believe the people of these two continents
could have sprung from the same stock. The
religion of Christ has shown itself to be able to
elevate mankind infinitely more than Buddhism has
done. This of itself would naturally lead even a
casual observer to suspect that its fundamental
HI Y EI SAN, 323
principles must be not only superior to those of
Buddhism but also vastly different. And so they
are. Let us compare them.
Buddhism teaches that existence is undesirable ;
that our appetites and passions should all be
crushed and eliminated ; that we should strive to
attain Nirvana, thus merging existence into anni-
hilation ; and that if we do not attain Nirvana, we
will be compelled to endure ceaseless cycles of
existence. In short, it teaches that existence is a
curse, and thus degrades every human faculty by
endeavoring to dwarf and crush them into nothing-
ness. If everybody put such teachings into prac-
tice, mankind would be exterminated within a
generation — for it is the privilege and the duty of
every Buddhist to strive to attain Nirvana. The
result of such doctrines is the stultifying and
deadening of all human faculties, and the produc-
tion of mild, ambitionless, degraded people.
Now, on the other hand, the religion of Christ
teaches that God created man for a life of happi-
ness in this world, and for a life of greater happi-
ness in the world to come; that He endowed us
with appetites and passions that were to be curbed
and enjoyed ; that the proper regulation and en-
joyment of them are productive of physical, men-
tal, and spiritual development ; that Christ himself,
the son of God, was our example in these matters,
and had set forth principles and rules for our guid-
ance in these matters; and that if we patterned
our lives after His, all would be well.
324 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Again : The religion of Christ teaches the doc-
trine of the atonement, and the doctrine of the re-
pentance and remission of sins without any earthly
mediator, but by direct communion with God.
Shaka never taught any such doctrine, nor have
any of the prominent expounders of his faith ever
breathed or hinted at so sublime a remedy for
human woes. The majesty, the power, and the in-
definable beauty of this doctrine alone give Chris-
tianity a hold upon the affections and sympathies
of a fallen race that the stony precepts of Shaka
never approximated to even.
Again: The religion of Christ teaches that we
shall see our Redeemer in the next life ; that we
shall know and be known of him ; that we shall have
a conscious, happy, and glorious existence through-
out all eternity upon the performance of certain
easy conditions in this life. Shaka taught that we
should be annihilated. Whatever his disciples in
succeeding centuries may have taught, there can be
no doubt that Shaka himself inculcated the doctrine
of annihilation, — Nirvana.
Again: The religion of Christ recognizes the
worth, the merits, and the virtues of woman in
a manner absolutely unknown to Buddhism. It
reaches with its fostering care that half of the hu-
man race which Buddhists not only ignore but
treat with contempt.
Again: The religion of Christ is perfect. It
was given to us in a perfect condition. Nothing
has been added to it in eighteen centuries. Nor
HIYEISAN. 325
have the culture and refinement of nearly two thou-
sand years been able to suggest any improvement,
to make any amendment, or to find any defect
therein. It is perfect, — just as we received it from
the hands of God, and just as we should expect
God to present a code of morality to man. It
leaves no doubt as to its origin. It emphatically
and distinctly declares itself to be from God, the
Father. This point is dwelt upon with great clear-
ness, and is frequently repeated. Its teachings meet
all human requirements. No emergency in life is
too complicated for it. If consistently and intelli-
gently practiced, it will produce perfect happiness
in this life. On the other hand, the religion of
Shaka was full of imperfections. It was fearfully
vague and indefinite. Its cardinal doctrines were
annihilation and transmigration. It had an exceed-
ingly meager moral code. His followers have
patched up its weak points in succeeding centuries.
They have built upon it an imperfect system of mo-
rality. In a word, it shows every possible trace of
its human origin. It never claimed to be of divine
origin. His followers may have made this claim in
its behalf, but there is no satisfactory evidence that
Shaka himself ever made any such claim. It is ex-
ceedingly imperfect and lamentably feeble in all its
details, — ^just like human productions of that de-
scription.
Again: Christ is a clearly defined and distinct
historical character. His birth, life, teachings, and
death are pictured with great minuteness and de-
326 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
tail. Four historians record these facts without
any material contradiction, and the testimony of a
vast throng of witnesses is in evidence to corrobo-
rate the substantial accuracy of those histories.
He was crucified and held up to the gaze of the
world so conspicuously that none of his followers
have ever attempted to question that fact, no mat-
ter how humiliating and galling might be the
heathen taunt about a God hung between thieves.
The existence and deeds of Christ are as thoroughly
established as those of Julius Caesar.
But, on the other hand, Shaka and his deeds are
almost a myth. That he was the son of some Raj
in northern Hindostan, — possibly near Benares or
Sarnath, — seems tolerably well established ; that he
taught the doctrines of annihilation and transmi-
gration seems pretty clear ; and that he died in
exile may, perhaps, be accepted as a fact. But
beyond this, everything is a mystery. The best
authorities cannot make more out of his history.
The mass of legends woven around his life by cen-
turies of succeeding devotees I rule out of evi-
dence. It is most untrustworthy hearsay. If I
were to apply the rules of evidence as strictly to the
historic proof of the life and deeds of Shaka as I
apply them to those of Christ, he would certainly
be a mythical personage.
Again: But why waste any more time? I
could easily write a book showing the world-wide
difference between these two great religions. But
it is useless to try and make any comparison be-
HIYEISAN, 327
tween them at all. The fundamental principles
underlying them are as divergent as the east is from
the west. The religion of Christ is divine. That
of Shaka is a superb generalization of a human
soul groping for the light. It is the device of a
sympathetic nature striving to fathom the mys-
teries of human life. It is the most ingenious
theory ever propounded by mortal man. That is
all it is. True, the votaries at its shrines encom-
pass one-third of the population of the globe ;
but it is fatally weak and deficient to meet the
moral requirements of mankind for all that. Nor
will another batch of legendary amendments
patched on to the mass of stupid myths already
smothering Shaka's poor generalizations ever make
it equal to Christianity. Strip off the superin-
cumbent mass of devices that the Romish Church
attempted to tack upon Christianity, and you will
have the pure doctrines of the Gospels. But when
you strip off the monastic lore from Buddhism,
what have you ? Almost nothing.
Here we have in Japan an amiable and intelli-
gent race of people, a people whose natural endow-
ments are unsurpassed. They have lived in one of
the loveliest climates in the world, with a bracing
and exhilarating atmosphere. They have been
surrounded by scenery of matchless beauty and
magnificence. And, for nearly fifteen centuries,
they have been under the influence of Buddhism.
Surely, if there be any great elevating power in
nature and in Buddhism, it should have raised the
328 LE TTERS FROM J A PAN.
Japanese people beyond their present level. Surely
these thousands of monks, communing with nature
in their sequestered retreats for so many centuries,
ought to have evolved some theory whereby their
fellow-men might have been elevated. But they
have not done so. This seems to me to be con-
clusive that men, of themselves, unaided by divine
revelation, cannot rise to so exalted a condition
as they can when assisted by divine revelation.
They at least have never shown the disposition to
do so.
But your Boston philosopher triumphantly an-
nounces that because some of the principles of
Christianity are found in the teachings of modern
Buddhism and in Confucianism that, therefore,
Christ was merely a human reformer enunciating
principles of human nature ; that there was noth-
ing supernatural about it at all ; that any human
being can evolve these principles from his inner
consciousness by concentrating his attention there-
on ; that because human beings in Asia have enun-
ciated some of the identical principles contained in
the Decalogue and in the Gospels, therefore there
is no reason why all the principles of the Decalogue
and of the Gospels might not have been evolved by
human beings in coming ages without any super-
natural aid or Divine Revelation ; that Christ was
merely a reformer enunciating general principles of
human nature and of human conduct, which same
principles undoubtedly could have been evolved in
the future by other men — because it is in evi-
HIYEISAN. 329
dence that some men did actually evolve or enun-
ciate some of those principles entirely by them-
selves.
I think I have stated the philosopher's argument
in full. Now let me state my argument in favor
of the theory that Christianity is of divine origin.
Either the universe came by chance, or it was
the creation of some intelligent being. Now,
which is more probable, that this infinite system
of revolving worlds was the work of an intelligent
creator, or that it was merely a chance? Any one
who believes that the universe came by chance is
fit to believe anything. Of course, the universe
was created by some intelligent power. Now this
Creator formed man with strong appetites and pas-
sions, and with tremendous moral powers, which,
if unrestrained and unguided, would quickly have
wrecked him. Is it not reasona|^le to suppose that
he would have given him a moral code whereby he
might be guided and elevated? Certainly. Of
course, it is possible to conceive that a man might
sit down and evolve these moral principles of his
nature all by himself, just as a boy might evolve in
the course of years all by himself the rules of arith-
metic. But it would be the work of a lifetime in
all probability. Of course, there is nothing intel-
lectually impossible in this conception. But the
probabilities are that it would never be accom-
plished by any one alone ; but put an arithmetic
into the boy's hand and he will master the science
very soon. Theoretically, he might evolve every-
3 2,0 LE TTERS FROM J A PAN.
thing for himself, but practically it would be a pure
impossibility.
Just so with the principles of Christianity. They
are all simple enough when once enunciated. There
is nothing intellectually impossible in conceiving
men to be able to evolve them unaided by divine
revelation, but has any one ever done it ? The
united intellect of Japan, China, and India have
only worked out a few of them in several thousand
years, and they might in future cycles of time
evolve the balance of them ; but, in the meantime,
mark the moral stagnation of the people. Is it
reasonable to suppose that a kind and merciful
Creator, after forming man with such tremendous
moral powers, would have cast him adrift to work
out the problems of life with only such principles
as he could himself evolve? What progress do
you suppose the world would have made ?
I believe Christ was divine because I do not
think it would have been possible for any single
man to evolve a perfect system of moral ethics. I
do not believe a single man could have evolved,
within thirty-three years, a code of morality so per-
fect that the criticism of the keenest intellects
during eighteen centuries has not been able to
suggest a solitary amendment thereto. None
of the sciences of to-day are the work of a single
individual. They are the result of the combined
thought of centuries. When a man has spent a
lifetime in evolving a single new principle or law
we designate his intellect as colossal. We admire
HIYEISAN, 331
and almost adore him. His praises are sung from
generation to generation. Newton spent twenty-
years in evolving a theory which a school-girl
can learn and glibly rattle off with abundant expla-
nations within a few hours — to all appearances
thoroughly comprehending it. Euclid spent twenty
years in evolving the principle of a single proposition
which a school-girl can now master in an hour ; and
can eloquently enunciate it as well as the old phi-
losopher himself, who deemed his labors worthy of
the sacrifice of a hecatomb of oxen.
We designate Euclid and Newton as colossal in-
tellects, and so they were. And now do you
believe that the son of a Jewish carpenter, sprung
from an ancestry of tradesmen, with no educa-
tional advantages, could have evolved a system
of moral ethics so perfect in every detail that the
civilization of the nineteenth century can not find
a single flaw therein? If you believe this, then
you can believe anything. I, for my part, believe
that Christ was God incarnate. I believe that His
teachings were divine revelations. Upon no other
hypothesis can I account for their matchless purity
and perfection. I deem them to be divine reve-
lations because such belief is consistent with my
ideas of an intelligent and merciful Creator, giving
to the helpless being that he has endowed with
such tremendous powers, a moral code suitable for
controlling his primitive nature ; and, further, as
this being attains to higher conditions of intellec-
tual development and social refinement, such belief
332 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
is consistent with my ideas of a kind Creator sup-
plementing that primitive code with a system of
moral ethics suitable to the complicated conditions
of mankind in all ages and among all races. And I
know that my belief in these doctrines has been an
anchor to my soul in the troubled waters of this
heathen community, keeping me from forms of
vice that I would have yielded to had I consulted
merely my animal instincts.
Sincerely yours,
Theopiiilus Pratt.
■-^.^ ^t
EM^<^K^^^a^^^^^lHI
SI
^^p ^iPN
J^k\
rarl
m--
-. • ■ i
^^•^^jB^^
: t
'n
mf
T^'
__3^
P
-^
"^^i^lMr"
r
f
■■■^^
Si
yl,-.
g^^
^# .45^
|p^
D Vl^' 1
id
■flT' '1
Uci^i-
^TN
I
•«i
si-*-
»5
i
LETTER XIX.
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN.
Kioto, Nifvemb^2S, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus :
After generalizing upon facts derived from four
years* experience among the Japanese, I have ar-
rived at a number of conclusions that will now be
submitted for your perusal.
In the first place, I regard the Japanese as the
most genteel smokers in the world. The use of
tobacco, as indulged in by them, so far from being
a filthy habit, is, in fact, an elegant accomplish-
ment. It is a habit in which the women can in-
dulge with perfect propriety. It is not character-
ized by the disgusting expectoration so common
with us. In short, tobacco smoking, as indulged in
by the Japanese, is in no sense a vice. We Saxons
debase ourselves by our manner of using the weed.
We are not satisfied with smoking it in huge masses,
but we mumble over huge quids of it, and stuff
vast quantities of it up our unoffending nostrils.
Such barbarism in the use of tobacco is unheard of
in Japan. The natives smoke but minute quanti-
ties of it at a time. A small pellet of it is put into
a delicate pipe, and only a couple of whiffs are
334 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
taken thereof. That description of Japanese smok-
ing, which characterizes it as " two whiffs and a
spit," is accurate so far as the whiffing is concerned,
but is entirely inaccurate as regards the spitting.
After his night's slumbers, a Jap usually gives a
tremendous yawn that serves as a rising bell for the
household, and brings forth his little pipe, whisk-
ing off seven or eight whiffs in rapid succession,
tapping the rim of the brazier between times by
way of emphasis. During the day-time he will in-
dulge in about twenty seasons of such relaxation —
supplementing the original allowance, of course,
with additional puffs whenever a call is received or
given. The entire amount smoked during a day
would not equal, if compressed, the bulk of an or-
dinary cigar, or the abysmal capacity of a meer-
schaum bowl. Nor is the strength of the tobacco
the Japanese use to be compared to the pungency
of the weed that we employ. Smoking, as thus
gracefully and moderately indulged in, can never
injure the health.
Another advantage of the Japanese system of
smoking is the utter absence of any offensive odor
lingering about the clothing. I can well remem-
ber how my chum at college, — a most inveterate
smoker, — would scent up, not only the clothes
upon my person, but also the very bedding in the
room. And, for months afterward, the carpet and
the tablecloth would be impregnated with a stale
and rank smell that was intensely disagreeable.
But I never fully realized the vile barbarism of our
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAP A N^. 335
method of using tobacco until I rented a Japanese
house in Tokio and kept " stag hall '* therein with
an Englishman, who was an inveterate smoker. He
always affirmed that he never expectorated while
smoking. Whether he was really unconscious of
any such action on his part, or was merely perpe-
trating a grim joke, I can not say ; but the condi-
tion of the tatamis around the spittoons, and of
the shojees and well-polished verandas, — silent wit-
nesses of his inaccurate marksmanship, — must have
filled the inmost soul of our landlord with horror
and disgust.
On one occasion, I inspected a native house in
company with the landlord. It had been occupied
by a German. We went through rooms that seemed
to steadily become filthier as we progressed in
our tour. The previous tenant had evidently dis-
pensed with the use of spittoons entirely. Nicotine
was spattered everywhere in indelible stains. The
dining room, which had evidently been the scene
of the principal orgies of the fiend and his boon
companions, presented a scene that fetched a groan
from the depths of the landlord's innermost parts,
and fastened wrinkles of disgust around the corners
of his mouth that lingered there as long as we were
on the premises, and I know not how long there-
after. Verily, smoking is a social problem wherein
the balance of criticism is decidedly in favor of the
Japanese.
But, regarding the use of sak^, I cannot speak
quite so favorably concerning them. Drunkenness
336 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
prevails throughout the empire in a mild form. I
use the term " mild," because it certainly is mild
when compared with the gross and bestial baccha-
nalian displays so common with Saxons. The
tame diet of the Japanese does not tend to pro-
duce violent appetites. During the year, you do
not often see a drunken person on the streets. On
public holidays, however, and particularly around
New Year's Day, it seems to be deemed every-
body's privilege to get rollicking drunk. Lord and
vassal, samurai and heimin^ master and servant, in-
dulge in sake until all caste distinction is forgotten,
and bacchanalian good-fellowship characterizes all
proceedings. If the master has been kind during
the year, his servants gather about him and lift
him up in the air half a dozen times or so. This
elevation is supposed to be typical of their high
esteem. Some indulge in childish tricks upon each
other ; some reel around the streets hiccoughing
forth barbaric odes that harrow up civilized tym-
panums immeasurably ; while others assume a se-
date and prof6und expression of serene gravity,
which ultimately culminates in a " boozy " slumber.
Sake is strongly alcoholic in its composition ; and,
when heated, it flies quickly to the head. The
Japanese, however, drink it from such small cups
that it takes them some time to get tipsy off it. The
Japanese certainly are not such swillers at drink-
ing as Saxons are. They would gaze with amaze-
ment upon some of our Germans, who swill down
daily their ten or twenty glasses of beer ; or upon
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 337
those Englishmen who use a bottle of brandy in a
day ; or upon those Irishmen who drain off whisky
as if it were only so much water. Yet, in the
course of a year, a vast amount of sak^ is con-
sumed in Japan. But, on the other hand, I am not
aware that delirium tremens is known in the empire.
It is certain that drunkenness does not create the
same havoc in Japan that it does in Europe and
America. The reason for this may be found in the
fact that sak^ is the only liquor in the country, and
it is by no means pleasant to the taste. Habitual
users of it have informed me that the only reason
they use it is, not because they like the taste, but
because they love its exhilarating effects.
Grape wine, or wine of any other description,
has never been known in Japan. Beer, ale, porter,
and brandy were never made. But when these
various beverages are manufactured at prices that
will place them at the disposal of the people, I fear
the Japanese will be afflicted with intemperance
to a greater extent than they now are. They love
the taste of our sparkling wines, and are fascinated
with their stimulating effects. And, without any
moral power to check their appetites, it may be
feared that they will speedily degenerate into a
nation of topers. The temperance problem is one
yet to be solved by the Japanese of the future.
* But let us now compare the Japanese race a
* One of the most common queries of my pupils was : *' Master,
why is it that your skin is white, while ours is brown ? And why is
it that there should be different races of men ? " Not being able to
22
338 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
little more closely with the Caucasian race. After
that, we will be in a better position to review some
of their social characteristics. It is my belief that
all mankind sprang from Adam and Eve, and that
the present vast difference in races is to be attrib-
uted to difference in climate primarily and chiefly,
and to difference in diet secondarily. I do not
accept the proposition that the remote progenitors
of the various races were various species of anthro-
pomorphous apes, that had been evolved from the
lower forms of animal and vegetable life preceding
them in those various countries. Nor do I accept
the proposition that the various complexions of
the various races of the present time is to be attrib-
uted to the difference of the constituent elements
entering into the composition of the vegetable and
animal life in these various countries. Let us rea-
son from the logic of facts a little.
If you expose yourself in the hot sun, you be-
come tanned. If you expose yourself to the severe
winds of winter, you become chapped. In either
case your complexion is darkened. But if you stay
in the house all the time, your complexion becomes
lighter. These are three universal and well ascer-
fumish them with any satisfactory answer from such scientific works
as I could obtain, I was forced upon a line of investigation and gen-
eralization based up>on facts derived from traveling and reading,
which resulted in the conclusions herein set forth. As the subject
is one that is open to much speculation, and is one yet involved in
doubt, I presume that I may modestly submit my own theories as
evolved from class-room discussion, without kindling the wrath of
professional scientists anchored to their own pet deductions.
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 339
tained facts. Generalizing therefrom, we say that
extremes of temperature darken the complexion,
heat making it black and cold making it reddish.
Now, as the truth of a hypothesis is established
by its coincidence with existing phenomena, let us
compare the above theory with existing geograph-
ical data. In the torrid zone, you will find brown
and black people, and in the frigid zones you will
find reddish-brown people, while in the temperate
zones you will find white people, and people whose
color approximates to white. But let us go a little
more into details. Follow the equator around the
world, and you will find the blackest people living
upon it and in its immediate vicinity. As you leave
the equator and go northward or southward toward
the temperate zones, you will find that complexions
become proportionately lighter. The Eg>'ptian is
lighter than the Nubian ; the inhabitants of Spain,
Italy, and Greece are lighter than the Moor or the
Arab; while the inhabitants of northern Europe
and of the British Islands have decidedly lighter
complexions than those of southern Europe. But
when you go further northward and reach the land
of the Esquimaux, you find the peculiar copper
complexion produced by exposure to extreme cold.
In Asia, the same law holds true. The Arab, the
Afghan, the Thibetan and the Chinese are much
lighter in color than the Hindoo, the Singhalese,
and the Malay ; and, going farther north, we find
the Tartars and the Japanese to be of lighter com-
plexion than any of those people just enumerated.
340 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
Many of the Tartars and Japanese are almost as
fair as the Saxons, some, indeed, having com-
plexions quite as fair. And, going yet further
northward, we find the aborigines of Siberia along
the cheerless seas of the frigid zones to have a
copper complexion.
The same general law holds true in the Western
Hemisphere. The aborigines on the equator in
South America are darker than the Red-skins of
North America. The present population of Amer-
ica cannot be fairly cited to uphold my theory,
because they have immigrated from Europe at a
comparatively recent date. But the query may
arise as to whether the ultimate complexion of the
people living in the United States will be reddish-
brown, like that of the North American Indian.
To this query a negative answer may safely be
given, for the Indians throughout the North
American Continent were continually exposed to
climatic changes. They were more like animals
living in the open air than like human beings.
Whatever the darkening tendency of exposure of
the skin to heat and cold might have been, it cer-
tainly had a fair opportunity to operate upon these
savages. But after a few centuries, I think that
the complexion of the inhabitants of the Southern
States will be found to be of a tawnier hue than
that of their Northern brethren.
Coming to Japan, we find our hypothesis illus-
trated with startling exactness. The heimin who
labor in the fields, and whose ancestors for many
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 341
centuries have been thus exposed to the sun,
are darker in complexion than the higher classes.
The mercantile classes who for centuries have lived
in cities, dwelling within the shade, are lighter in
complexion than the peasants, who for centuries
have labored almost naked in the rice-fields. The
fishermen along the coasts are also of a darker
complexion ; and the samuraiy who from remote
times have taken their ease within the shade, are
quite fair in complexion, some of them, indeed,
being almost as white as Saxons. Some of the
court ladies, in fact, are quite as white as the
fairest Saxon.
So we have here in Japan a race like ourselves;
a race sprung from the same progenitors, a race
with precisely the same spiritual, intellectual, and
physical qualities. We have developed a higher
set of faculties, and consequently possess nobler
natures. Our meat diet gives us a finer physical
development. Milk, butter, and meat give strength
and rotundity to the flesh and muscles, and a fresh
and plump appearance to the face. An exclusive
rice diet gives a sallow complexion. Milk, cheese,
butter, beef, and mutton have never been used by
the Japanese at all. There are no goats in the
empire, and but few cows. Boiled rice, with the
merest nibble of meat and salt radish, has formed
the diet of the masses of the people for many cen-
turies, and they are a feeble race to-day ; while the
Caucasians and the Tartars, who have lived on
meat and milk from time immemorial, are to-day
342 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the most vigorous portion of humanity. I have no
doubt that with several generations of our diet the
Japanese will become in every way our peers phys-
ically. This, however, is a social problem that
must be left for time to solve.
The Japanese arc a very amative race. They are
not licentious like the Turks, but are strongly in-
clined to be sensuous. Their low diet has, to a
great extent, kept down the grosser passions of
their nature. Wc now come face to face with that
strange institution of the feudal Government of
Japan known as the Yoshkvara system. This was
a system of legalized prostitutioa It was not
only legalized but it was under government patron-
age. The government support of such an institu-
tion has been whimsically accounted for by Darwin
in his Descent of Man on the hypothesis that the
government feared that the Japan Islands would
become eventually too full of people, and that they
therefore took this method of keeping down the
population. But the Legacy of lyeyas says that
it was done to restrain the passions of the samurai
within proper limits, so that there need not be end-
less floggings to keep the hordes of warlike re-
tainers in order. And this is probably the true
explanation. Macaulay says that an Englishman
and a Frenchman will reason to opposite conclu-
sions frequently from the same fact. And it is not
an uncommon thing in the realm of science for two
minds to reason to opposite conclusions from the
same premises. One of these conclusions, however,
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 343
must be an exceptional one. Some minds are fond
of reasoning to exceptional conclusions. It seems
to me that Darwin's mind was of this order. He
showed it in reasoning about the descent of man
from anthropomorphous apes. Given the facts that
the physical structure of animals bears a striking
resemblance to that of man, and that man seems
to be a later production, Darwin prefers the con-
clusion that man was evolved from lower animal
forms during countless ages instead of the conclu-
sion that these facts argue that all creatures Were
made upon the same general plan by the same Cre-
ator.
The Yoshiwara system was undoubtedly the pro-
dilction of feudal licentiousness. With three
millions of fierce samurai to control,, it was no
wonder that the Tokugawas should have hit upon
this low method of curbing the violent natures of
their retainers. What better method had they ?
Neither Shintoism nor Buddhism furnished any
adequate moral check upon the passions of the
military classes. They therefore developed the
Yoshhvara system all over the empire. And the
Daimios of the provinces heartily indorsed the
system and laid out "worm-eaten spots" in all
their capitals and great cities. Much money was
lavished upon these foul localities and they were
made attractive hells. Vice was there made to
appear in its most seductive forms. Luxury and
refinement were impressed into the service of this
wretched avocation. The misery of the human
344 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
soul was stifled and soothed by elegant surround-
ings, and a tolerant and condoning social senti-
ment made it reputable for persons of good fami-
lies to take wives from the Yoshiwara, and for
mothers to sell their daughters to the proprietors
of the brothels.
The history of the Yoshiwara system is inter-
woven with tales of the wildest debauch, of the black-
est despair, and of the most romantic and hopeless
love. The brave youth from the provinces, where
valor is yet a virtue, is smitten with the subtle in-
fluence and wrecks his fortune and his health upon
some coquetting courtesan who soon bestows upon
another victim the withering spell of her hellish
charms. And now the wanton and beautiful wretch
is herself ensnared. She, upon whose smiles the
bloods of the town fondly linger, becomes touched
with the fire that burns the heart ; and, realizing
the fearful position in which she has been placed,
immolates herself upon the shrine of hopeless love,
and tinges the scandal of the town with melancholy
tales of her blighted passion. In such a social
atmosphere was the young samurai brought up.
What wonder that they degenerated into a class of
reckless libertines ? The only marvel to me is that
there was any virtue at all left among the people.
That wonderful provision of Providence, known as
the Natural Religion, has truly kept this people
from degenerating into a race of voluptuous
imbeciles.
Coming now to the social condition of the
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN, 345
Japanese, I consider it safe to say that the relative
position of the sexes is about the same as it is in
all countries. I am old-fashioned enough to be-
lieve that God created mankind in accordance with
certain general laws that can not be changed by us.
It seems manifest to me that He made man to be
the unit of political power, and woman to be the
unit of social power. He has made man to be the
aggressive, the progressive, the governing power in
the world. He has made woman to be the conserv-
ative and refining power in the world. It is man's
nature to be democratic and liberal. It is woman's
nature to be fond of social distinctions, to be aris-
tocratic. It is man's nature to compete and con-
tend not only with his fellow-man, but also with
Nature herself. Following this impulse, he has
developed all the political institutions of the world,
and has also covered the globe with cities, rail-
roads, navies, and productive fields. But it is
woman's nature to shrink from contest and to en-
twine her affections around those she loves with
engrossing and tender devotion. She has filled the
world with homes, with sweet and tender recollec-
tions,with elevated sentiment and religious impulses.
She has been the friend, the companion, and the
affectionate counsellor of man in all ages and in all
countries. This relative position of the sexes pre-
vails all over the world. Wherever the condition
of woman is degraded, there also is the condition
of man correspondingly low. And wherever the
condition of woman is elevated, there is the position
346 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
of man correspondingly high. But their relative
positions are always about the same. Man is al-
ways the progressive, the aggressive, the governing
power ; woman is as generally the conservative, the
refining power. Mankind cannot change this rela-
tive position of the sexes. By the force of our
natures wc must act out our respective parts until
some greater power shall otherwise ordain.
I hate and despise the tendency in England and
America to antagonize the sexes. Those female
agitators, who endeavor to make their sisters dis-
satisfied with their lot, and who proclaim that man
is but a usurper who has violently seized upon the
more desirable positions in life, and has forced
woman into less desirable, and inferior positions,
arc but insulting the dignity of their own sex.
That which God has ordaintd, call thou not inferior.
Each position is highly honorable. Neither is in-
ferior. Neither is superior. The world cannot
afford to lose the gentle qualities of women, for
there is nothing in the masculine nature that can
replace those qualities.
While in Japan woman has always been the
friend, and the companion of man, and has been
the mother of the rising generations, man, on the
other hand, has always been the governing power.
He did not usurp anybody's right. He was dele-
gated by the Creator to be the controlling force.
He has founded the political institutions of the
empire ; he has built the cities and the navies of
the realm ; the bridges, the highways, the temples,
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 347
are all the work of his hands. All the textile man-
ufactures, the matchless embroideries, the lovely
lacquer ware, the exquisite porcelains, the magnifi-
cent bronzes, the intricate carvings, are his produc-
tions. The carpenters, the masons, the stone-cutters,
the blacksmiths, the artisans of every description,
have always been men. All the severe labor that
has reclaimed the land of this empire from waste
and desolation, and has made it into a vast and
lovely garden, was performed by men. And the
immense annual expenditure of toil and patience
that is now required to keep these millions of acres
under a state of cultivation, is furnished by men,
and bear in mind that all this is done without any
claim of superiority on the part of the men. The
Creator has designed them for this work, and by
the force of circumstances they naturally and cheer-
fully obey the hidden power that controls them
without ever thinking of sounding their own praises
for so doing.
Generally speaking, the Japanese men make kind
and affectionate husbands ; and the women make
virtuous and exemplary wives and mothers ; and
the children are certainly the happiest little imps
in the world ; their parents fondle and spoil them
most effectually, and, at the same time, never lose
their control over them. The non-irritating nature
of the native diet has much to do with such serene
nerves and temperaments. I have never seen a
child whipped in Japan; on three or four occasions
I have seen a reproving mother administer a mild
348 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
slap over the head, which correction invariably
brings the little recalcitrants to order.
The husband has absolute control over the person
of his wife ; at the same time, I have never seen a
man strike a woman in Japan, yet I believe that
there is considerable pinching and slapping done
on occasions when those strange and ungovernable
spells of exasperating ugliness, known as tantrums,
settle down upon their matrimonial horizon. On
these occasions there is considerable free hitting,
biting, and scratching indulged in on both sides of
the house ; but the greater strength of the husband
invariably leaves him master of the situation, and
the belligerent household speedily resumes its se-
rene and happy course. On such occasions, unless
physical force were resorted to, it would be difficult
to say where matters would end ; for the women
are very childish, and, in their paroxysms of fury,
might speedily demolish the household, unless re-
strained. These family jars arc not of frequent
occurrence, but they make up in intensity for their
rarity.
It is far more common for women to quarrel with
each other than for husbands and wives to quarrel.
I was once passing down a village street when I
heard a tremendous commotion. Two women,
upon opposite sides of a street, were railing at each
other at the rate of about sixty miles an hour.
The atmosphere fairly glowed with vituperation.
I arrived upon the scene just as they rushed at
each other, spitting, scratching, and biting like a
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 349
couple of furious cats. They were clawing each
other in terrible earnest when the husband of one
of the combatants rushed upon them and tore
them apart, hurling one of them to one side of the
street and the other one to the other side, where
they respectively glared at each other awhile and
then cooled down. In a few minutes they were
quietly discussing the misunderstanding and were,
to all appearances, upon amicable terms.
When I was living in Tokio I became acquainted
with an occurrence that was shocking yet unavoid-
able. We were keeping house in Ban-cho. Our
cook lived with his wife in a distant wing of the
house. His lady persisted in bathing during the
summer in our front yard. We instructed our
cook that this scandalous proceeding must be
stopped as we did not care to have our visitors
confronted with any such spectacle. He accord-
ingly ordered her to desist from using our garden
as a bath-room. But, behold ! next day found her
again bathing in the shrubbery. We complained
to the cook at once, and he said he would see that
it did not happen again. We soon heard a fearful
scream. The cook quietly came into our parlor
holding in his hand a hoc handle, with which he
had crept up behind his unsuspecting spouse and
had inflicted a terrible blow upon her bare back.
He said that he did not think we would be again
annoyed by his wife, but that, if we were, to report
immediately and he would make her " eat stick"
without limit. We felt like making him " eat
350 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
stick " for the balance of the day. But, upon sober
thought, we came to the conclusion that nothing
could be done except to forbid any further per-
sonal chastisement upon our premises. What can
you possibly do with such people? They are
mere children. Yet, while all this sounds very hor-
rible, and we feel inclined to hold up our hands
and denounce such barbarism, we should modestly
bear in mind that we do not need to go back very
far in English history to find that women were
nearly drowned in ducking stools, and were flogged
upon the bare back through the streets. Truly we
live in a strange world ! And the incongruities
of the nineteenth century are the strangest part
of it.
You may easily infer that the question of Woman
Suffrage has not yet agitated Japan. This ques-
tion cannot arise until the question of popular
enfranchisment is up for discussion. At present,
no one in Japan has the right of suffrage. The
emperor and his cabinet rule with absolute power.
In a few years, however, there will undoubtedly
be some sort of Parliament or Congress convened.
Then will there be limited suffrage in some shape
or other, after which it may be safely presumed
that universal male suffrage will gradually be
adopted. Then will the people be in the interest-
ing position to discuss female suffrage. I appre-
hend, however, that by that time the general dis-
inclination and inaptitude of women for political
life will be so clearly demonstrated in Europe and
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN, 351
America that the Japanese will be relieved from
any violent commotion on this subject. But it will
be interesting, nevertheless, to briefly review some
of the pet arguments advanced in favor of Woman
Suffrage in Europe and America, and to see how
they will fit Japan. I am constrained to stir up
this hornets' nest because of the fire-brand that
you inconsiderately hurled at me last month,
through the medium of the United States mail, in
the shape of a pamphlet written by a rabid agitator
of the opposite sex, whose bitter denunciations,
aimed at the sex to which I have the misfortune to
belong, placed me under a cloud of humility from
which I am now but timidly emerging. You will
therefore kindly make allowance for my demoral-
ized condition, and you will excuse any heresy
that may chance to crop out in my very humble
opinions. One favorite argument in favor of
Woman Suffrage is that there should be no tax-
ation without representation. It is urged that
women hold property, and pay taxes on property,
and yet do not have any voice in making the laws
of the country. There is a plausible revolu-
tionary ring about this argument that is, at first,
very catching. But a close inspection will reveal
its fallacy and speciousness. It is quite true that
women holding property are compelled to pay
taxes thereon. And this is quite just and reason-
able, because this property is protected both in
times of peace and in times of war by the civil and
military power of the State. This power of the State
352 LETTERS FROM JAP A N^.
is based upon masculine force. By means of this
masculine force, order is maintained, enemies are
kept away, and the property becomes enriched
and enhanced in value by the peaceful and bene-
ficial influence of a civilized community. Such fa-
vorable conditions would not exist in turmoil and
war. Masculine force is the power that keeps the
peace. This service must be paid for by property,
whether owned by man or woman. This general
principle holds quite as fast in Japan as in other
parts of the world
It should also be borne in mind that the number
of women holding property is very small when
compared with the number of men holding prop-
erty. Men are, and have always been, the accu-
mulators, the originators, the makers of property.
It is a rare thing for women to accumulate or make
property. Other and more important duties
demand their attention. Almost all the female
property holders in the world have been fortunate
enough to inherit their wealth from male kindred,
who, perhaps, have spent years of severe toil in
accumulating it ; and they must take the property
with its incumbrances as well as v/ith its benefits.
They are at full liberty to revel in its princely
revenues, which they have done nothing to earn.
But, on the other hand, they must also pay the
annual tax that the Board of Assessors placed op-
posite to it when it was held by father, husband,
brother, or uncle. It is the property that is taxed,
not the individual. If the property comes to her
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN, 353
incumbered with mortgages, tax-arrears, or other
debts of her father, she must pay off these Habili-
ties or the property will be auctioned off by the
creditors. Property is taxed irrespective of the
sex of the party holding the title deeds.
Now, if the vast mass of property in this world
had been accumulated by women, there would be
some justice in the claim that they should have a
voice in legislation affecting it. But almost all
the property in this world has been accumulated
by men. They are the busy workers who have
developed the resources of the earth. Women
rarely accumulate property, as they were not de-
signed to compete, to struggle, to concentrate all
their thoughts and efforts on such things. They
have neither the time nor the inclination for severe
and laborious application in pursuit of wealth.
Now men have made equitable laws regulating
property in general. These laws are just and im-
partial, and do not unjustly discriminate against
property held by women. Therefore I fail to see
why universal suffrage should be granted to women
because a few of their more fortunate sisters have
inherited from their male kindred a certain amount
of property, which, in the course of time, will
probably revert by inheritance to some male
kinsman, or will be gradually reabsorbed by male
competitors in the vicissitudes of trade. Suffrage
should be based upon some general law in nature,
not upon exceptions. This observation will also
be found to be applicable to Japan.
23
354 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
Furthermore, legislation is powerless and absurd
without the ability to enforce its mandates. The
power that enforces laws should be the power to
make laws. Man is the power that enforces laws
in this world. Therefore I fail to see why the bas-
ing of suffrage upon man as the unit of political
power is not a correct general principle. To illus-
trate our theory, let us suppose that universal male
and female suffrage prevails in the United States.
Suppose that all the women vote to have a mon-
archical form of government, and that all the men
vote to have a republican form of government.
The women, although outnumbering the men,
could not enforce their wish against the men
through lack of power. But, on the other hand, if
all the men were to vote in favor of a monarchical
form of government, and all the women were to
vote in favor of a republican form of government,
the men could readily enforce their wish in the
matter.
Men, as a matter of courtesy, may unite and
agree to give women equal right of suffrage with
themselves. But this would not increase the en-
forcing power of the state at all. Paper money
has a purchasing power when it represents gold
and silver. Let the bullion cease to exist, how-
ever, and where would be the purchasing power of
your paper money? If you issue twice as many
bills as there is specie in the country, you reduce
their purchasing power by one-half. In precisely
the same manner a paper ballot represents the po-
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 355
litical unit behind it. If the voice of the ballot-box
be disobeyed, you call out your police forces and
your armies and enforce its mandate. Man is the
power, the coercive force, in the state. Without
that implied coercive force, your laws become inef-
fective and ridiculous. Women may meet in legis-
lative halls and pass resolutions and formulate de-
crees at pleasure, but it is man that they call upon
to destroy the trespassing rat that is carrying con-
sternation into their ranks and disturbing the legis-
lative equipioise of their deliberations.
To increase the number of ballots in the box will
not necessarily increase the coercive power in the
state. Men may grant the privilege of casting
these ballots to their mothers, sisters, wives, and
daughters, under the mistaken notion that they are
merely conferring a right. But, in reality, they are
sharing their birthright as a matter of courtesy
with their families without realizing that they are
disturbing the political equipoise of the land, and
are opening the door for dangerous and humiliat-
ing complications.
Another argument that has been advanced in
favor of Woman Suffrage is that woman will purify
the ballot-box. Inasmuch as there are nearly as
many bad women in the world as there are bad
men, and as woman does not appear to have
cleansed society from its many evils in the course
of several thousand years — the realm where they
reign supreme — it is quite incomprehensible to me
how they will do any better at purifying ballot-
356 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
boxes. For you can not discriminate in this mat-
ter and give the right of suffrage to the virtuous
women alone, but you must confer this right on all
women alike. And I can assure you that I would
prefer life in a pagan country to going up to the
ballot-box in company with a gang of drunken,
cursing women on election day. Bad men are
disagreeable enough on such occasions ; but may
Providence spare us from bad women !
The fact is, that if woman had been designed to
exercise the right of suffrage she would have exer-
cised it long before our day. And, if she has not
been designed to exercise the right of suffrage, all
the legislation in the world will not create in her
any inclination or aptitude for it either in Japan or
anywhere else. I have no patience with those
women who neglect and ignore those feminine
qualities without which the world would be badly
off indeed ; who degrade their own sex by perpet-
ually striving to be masculine in sentiment and
deed, and the burden of whose complaint seems to
be a protest against God for not having created
them as men. I do not like to see these agitators
slighting so large a portion of the human race.
Leaving, now, this great question of Woman
Suffrage to be settled by the good sense of future
Japan, we will briefly consider in conclusion the
complicated and troublesome question of Capital
and Labor in Japan.
Under the feudal system this was a very simple
question. The three great divisions of society —
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 357
the samurai, the tradesmen (merchants and arti-
sans), and the peasantry, were separated by un-
yielding barriers. The samurai formed the aris-
tocracy; the tradesmen dwelt in the cities and
towns ; the peasantry were the country folks. In
a population of about thirty millions, it is fair to
estimate the samurai at about three millions, the
tradesmen at about fifteen millions, and the peas-
antry at about twelve millions. Centuries of cul-
ture and refinement, centuries of affluence and
power, centuries of privilege and political pre-
rogative, had been thrown around the samurai,
until the laws of heredity had developed features
that were expressive of noble emotions and a de-
portment typical of dash and politeness. They
looked upon the tradesmen with supercilious con-
descension, and upon the peasantry with supreme
scorn. While a marriage between an impecunious
samurai and the daughter of a wealthy merchant
might be tolerated, it was impossible for a samurai
to marry into the family of a peasant. These two
classes have been distinct for so many centuries
that, as regards tastes, disposition, and language,
they are almost as dissimilar as different races.
The coarse patois of the tillers of the fields is fre-
quently unintelligible to the samurai ; while the
high-flown diction of the samurai, abundantly in-
terspersed with Chinese words and with endless
honorifics, and containing long sentences padded to
death with verbiage and circumlocutory phrases,
was utterly unintelligible to the peasantry. Com-
358 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
munication between the two classes was almost
entirely cut off. The profoundest respect was ex-
pected from the peasantry. Whenever a samurai
passed along the highway, the peasant must re-
move his head-cloth and get off from his beast of
burden.
On the other hand, what was the condition of
the peasantry ? Centuries of oppression had pro-
duced a race of inoffensive and amiable boors. The
baby, tumbling around upon the tatamis in the
hamlet, was destined to develop into a low-browed,
plodding peasant, destitute of any ambition or
noble sentiment. How could it have been other-
wise? Centuries of monotonous diet, centuries of
unvarying routine of daily occupation, have pro-
duced an uninteresting similarity of traits in all the
peasantry throughout the empire. And these cir-
cumstances have really developed a distinct class
of people, having coarse features, base natures, and
cringing dispositions. They have never enjoyed edu-
cational advantages of any description. They have
had no social advantages. Nor have they ever,
from the remotest times, been favored with any
political power or privilege. Nothing but their
animal instincts have been developed. No matter
in what part of the empire you may be traveling,
you can always single out the peasantry because of
their hereditary traits. For over a thousand years
they have been the tillers of the soil, the hewers of
wood, the bearers of burdens. Nobody has ever
encouraged them to develop the higher instincts of
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAM. 359
their souls. None of the nobler faculties of their
minds have ever been cultivated, if, indeed, they
have ever been credited with possessing any such
faculties at all. As a natural result of this course
of treatment they are to-day ignorant, superstitious,
and coarse. Yet they are industrious and frugal in
their habits, amiable and docile in disposition, and
exceedingly patient and submissive. But they are
also very obstinate in adhering to their own ideas
and customs, and, consequently, do not become
ready converts to civilized innovations. Their
credulity and superstition are very strong. The
grossest myths to be found within the creeds of
the realm have always found them to be staunch
votaries. They were, in fact, but serfs cultivating
the ground for their feudal lords, and their condi-
tion does not appear to have been any better than
the condition of the serfs in Europe during feudal
times.
Midway between these two classes come the
merchants and artisans. Like the middle classes
in all countries they formed the backbone of the
country. They were more refined than the peas-
antry, having possessed for centuries better educa-
tional facilities than the poor sons of the soil.
Their very occupations were a continual means of
education. They did not possess the daring and
the polish of the samurai^ but they were intelligent
and enterprising. They did not possess the ambi-
tionless natures of the peasantry, yet they were
thoroughly submissive, and paid cringing deference
360 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
to the samurai. While not vacillating and cynical in
their religious beliefs, yet were they not as grossly
ignorant and superstitious as the peasantry. Nor
were they characterized by that reckless prodigality
and extravagant wastefulness that seem to accom-
pany the leisured classes everywhere, but they
were frugal, prudent, cautious, and conservative.
For centuries their occupations have been hered-
itary, until the peculiar traits of their trades seem
to have impressed themselves to a certain extent
upon their natures.
Under the old feudal system, the capital of the
country centered in the hands of the feudal lords,
the samurai y and the high-grade merchants. Prac-
tically the Shogun and the Daimios controlled the
capital of the entire nation. The produce of the
land belonged to them. Rice was the medium of
exchange. It was known how many kokus, or
bushels of rice, each Daimiate was capable of pro-
ducing. A certain percentage of this was claimed
by the Shogun as tribute. A bare pittance was set
apart for the cultivators thereof, and the balance
went to the Daimios who pensioned their hordes
of samurai with immense quantities of it, and
stored the balance in their warehouses to purchase
services and merchandise from the artisans and
merchants. Their magnificent collections of silks,
porcelains, bronzes, and lacquerware were paid for
out of this reserve fund ; and as they thus held the
necessary of life, they were in a position to drive
very one-sided bargains with the helpless trades-
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 36 1
men. When in special need of hard cash, they
would set their own valuation upon the rice, and
intimate irresistibly to some rich merchant their
wish that he should purchase it at that price.
These dignitaries had practically " cornered " all of
that article within the four seas of Japan. The
masses were helpless. It would be difficult to con-
ceive of a more absolute oligarchy. Labor was
completely at their mercy ; they dictated whatso-
ever terms they chose, and those terms were the
bare existence of the laboring classes. Labor was
looked upon by the samurai with absolute con-
tempt. It was degraded and despised as only
effete aristocracies can despise it. The laboring
people were poor beyond our conception. It is no
exaggeration to say that, on an average, twenty
millions out of thirty millions of the population
lived on less than five dollars per month, and that
the average laborer lived on less than three dollars
per month. Rice and the merest nibble of vege-
tables and fish constituted their diet, and cotton
fabrics of coarse quality served as clothing. Only
the rich could afford silk goods, or a mixture of
silk and cotton. The average house did not cost
over five hundred dollars, and the only furniture
was a few sets of bed-quilts, cooking and house-
hold utensils, tatamis^ and a few ornamented sho-
jees and screens. Newspapers were unknown, and
books were rare. Correspondence with adjoining
provinces was phenomenal when indulged in. A
person grew up in his native hamlet, and never
362 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
went twenty miles from it in his lifetime. A per-
son who had crossed the mountains into an adjoin-
ing province, or had, perchance, roved as far* as
Yeddo, acquired the reputation of a traveler, and
was quoted by his neighbors as an authority on
such subjects.
Nor were the wealthy people at all affluent in our
sense of the term. Ten thousand dollars made a
rich man. Fifty thousand dollars made an exceed-
ingly rich man. Very few were ever worth one
hundred thousand dollars. The richest merchant
Japan ever had lived in Yeddo about one hundred
years ago. He is reputed to have amassed by a
series of bold speculations a fortune amounting to
five millions of dollars. He started in life as an
orange merchant ; he imported them by junk from
Kiushiu, a distance of over six hundred miles. On
one occasion a long spell of tempestuous weather
kept the various orange fleets coast -bound ; he,
however, boldly put to sea and reached Yeddo,
where he sold his fruit on an empty market at a
fine profit. On another occasion, when Yeddo was
swept by one of its terrible conflagrations, he
bought up all the lumber, and "cornered" the
market, so that when the city was rebuilt every-
body had to purchase their materials from him,
and he was enabled thus to amass a fabulous for-
tune. But, as before observed, such fortunes were
phenomenal.
The foregoing description will convey to your
mind a fair idea of the condition of capital and
SOCIAL PROBLEMS IN JAPAN. 363
labor during feudal times. But when the country
was thrown open to foreign intercourse twenty-four
years ago, the existing relations of Japanese society
became changed. The tradesmen became affluent
oflf foreign commerce ; while the haughty samurai^
scorning to defile themselves with anything savor-
ing of labor or trade, became impoverished. This
state of affairs culminated in the Revolution of
1 868- 1 870, when the Daimios surrendered their
prerogatives to the government, and the samurai^
stripped of their hereditary privileges, were reduced
to the level of common subjects. Some of the
lowest grade samurai drifted into trade and labor ;
some had sufficient means to be indifferent to the
change ; a few actually died of starvation ; but the
vast proportion of them drifted into government
employ and into the government schools. As
matters are now shaping themselves, it is not im-
probable that in a few years the government will
base a titled peerage upon this remnant of the old
feudal aristocracy.
At present, the clashing between capital and
labor is hardly known in Japan. The masses will
be many years in forgetting the old distinction
between themselves and the upper classes. They
yet regard the samurai with instinctive fear and
respect. They yet look upon them as beings in-
herently superior to themselves. But the day will
surely come when the laborer will begin to question
his own inferiority. He will query whether he has
not more than merely the right to exist ; whether
364 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
he is not entitled to a few of the pleasures, and to
a few of the relaxations of this life ; whether he
should not have a few mental diversions and hours
of leisure to devote to his spiritual development.
He will rise above a condition of mere animal con-
tentedness and be ambitious to promote the
welfare of his family as well as his own. When
that time comes, the Japanese will sec the application
of the tenth and of the eleventh commandments,
which contain, in fact, the only principles that can
adjust this question here or anywhere else. When
men learn to do as they would be done by ; when
they learn to show that consideration for the unfort-
unate condition of others that is demanded by the
Gospels, and when those in lowly circumstances
learn to curb their envy and their jealousy of those
more fortunately circumstanced than themselves,
then will be evolved that mutual regard and consid-
eration between the moneyed classes and the labor-
ing classes, that will solve this vexed problem in
all countries.
Sincerely yours,
TiiEOPHiLUS Pratt.
THK THKEE ESTATE>
LETTER XX.
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS.
Kioto, December 5, 1877.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
A person can not live long in Japan without
coming a good deal in contact with English
people. They constitute a large proportion of the
foreign community in the far East, and form an
important social and commercial factor in this
country. Hardly had Commodore Perry concluded
his famous treaty with the Shogun before England
and the European Powers were loudly clamoring
for similar treaty privileges, which, as a matter of
course, could not well be withheld from them.
They speedily filled the Treaty Ports, and, for a
number of years, plied a vigorous business. The
numberof foreigners in Japan to-day is not over three
thousand ; and I do not think it an unfair estimate to
place the number of English residents at fully fifty
per cent, of the entire foreign community, while
we Americans who opened up the country do not
number over twenty per cent, of the community.
But, although our element is decidedly in the
minority, yet it is a powerful and an active ele-
ment, not only in the civilization of Japan, but also
366 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
in forming the social tone and the public sentiment
of the general community. Our English cousins, who
have India all to themselves, and who do pretty
much as they please in China, find in Japan an
aggressive and independent sentiment that docs
not submissively yield to British ideas and dictation.
To say that the British lion chafes and growls
under this unaccustomed treatment would be put-
ting it in exceedingly mild terms, when the English
newspapers of Yokohama, like flaming volcanoes,
are belching forth the indignation of their country-
men at some contrary action on the part of the
Japanese Government, or on the part of the refrac-
tory Americans. The continued mutterings and
rumblings of the press would keep the community
in a state of chronic disturbance were it not for the
fact that we have learned that when it is quietest,
then British interests are being conserved ; but that
when it is loudest, then our interests and those of
the country are being promoted so as to antagonize
those of our cousins aforesaid in some way that
they do not relish. We have therefore come to
look upon the press as a delicate meter indicating
the relative progress of the country and of British
interests ; and we feel cheerful when it is noisiest,
resting assured that British influence and rapacity
have been checked by some untoward event, and
we grow suspicious when the turmoil subsides for
any great length of time, fearing lest their grasping
proclivities are being unduly gratified at the expense
of the outside community.
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS, 367
The antagonism between British and American
ideas is sharper in Japan than it is anywhere else in
the Orient. Our views are perpetually coming in
violent collision. Perhaps the most marked con-
trast between our method of dealing with the Jap-
anese and that of the British is shown in our postal
treaty with Japan, and in our theory respecting the
Shimonos^ki indemnity. When we made our pos-
tal treaty with the Japanese about four years ago,
dealing with them as if they were intelligent equals,
the new departure was met with derisive scorn by
the English community. With the same verbose
and acrimonious logic that they used nearly a hun-
dred years ago in predicting the speedy failure of
the ** Yankee Republic," — that, in fact, they have
used at each critical juncture in our history ever
since to demonstrate the worthlessness and im-
becility of our democratic institutions — they said
that the Japanese were unable to conduct a postal
system upon foreign plans, that they were abso-
lutely untrustworthy, and that dire confusion and
endless delays would result from their inexperience
and shiftlessness. Yet the Japanese have managed
the matter with great ability and credit to them-
selves, and similar treaties will speedily be con-
summated with other nations.
. Regarding the Shimonos^ki indemnity, our theory
is that it was a vast sum of money unjustly extorted
from a feeble government that was rent by internal
dissension, and at a time when it was vainly endeav-
oring to quell rebellions among semi-independent
368 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
clans, and to punish those fierce clans for their
aggressions upon foreigners. To extort millions of
dollars from the Shogun for the acts of rebels on the
borders of the empire, after he had done his best
to punish them for their depredations, and after
the injured parties had already exacted a sanguin-
ary vengeance for the misdeeds, we considered un-
just. We said that the indemnity thus extorted
should be refunded, and we expressed our willing-
ness to return our share of it at once. The horror
and the indignation of our British cousins at being
asked to return money upon which they had already
tightened their grip can better be imagined than
described. A tremendous controversy arose upon
the subject. This strife yet continues. How it
will end, I cannot tell. But I trust that our coun-
trymen will eventually return their portion of the
spoil, whether England ever does so or not.
There are three well-defined classes of English-
men in Japan. The first class is composed of fair-
minded and courteous individuals who are not so
bigoted in their notions about Albion's superiority
as to be unwilling to concede merit to others out-
side of their own nation. They are willing to learn
something about other countries. They do not
pride themselves upon their ignorance of America
and of American affairs, but they really feel gratified
in being sufficiently familiar with American geog-
raphy to be able to locate Yale College in Con-
necticut, and Harvard College in Massachusetts,
and to be able to state that Philadelphia is a city,
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS, 369
and not a State. As far as they have any pro-
nounced political views, they are generally liberal
and democratic in their tendencies. They are in-
telligent, sociable, and cosmopolitan in their na-
tures.
The second class is composed of full-blown,
hearty specimens of humanity, who take life easy
and endeavor to avoid as far as possible all worry
and bother. They are plodding workers and hon-
est, moderately energetic business men; but at the
same time they take all the holidays the law allows
— feeling grievously abused, should the number
be curtailed — and invariably appropriating all the
extra ones that they can legitimately obtain.
They are excellent judges of the respective merits
of porter, snipe, and pig, but have hazy and indef-
inite views oh political theories differing from their
conservative ideas about monarchy and aristocracy.
As connoisseurs of horses, dogs, and trout, they
are sans pareil ; but their perceptions of the beau-
ties of republican institutions are hopelessly ob-
tuse ; and, although they are indefatigable hunters
and anglers, yet they never develop sufficient men-
tal acumen to take exceptions to the views of the
Lojidon Times, the Daily News, or any other one
of the journals from which they cram their brains
with political lore. They make tough enemies,
hospitable friends, and conservative subjects ; but
they invariably prefer hearty good fellowship, well
backed up with a substantial array of stuffed veal, ale,
and pudding, to exhausting political controversy.
24
3 70 LE TTERS FROM J A PAN.
And about anything relating to the history, the
geography, or the institutions of America, they
are mildly and complacently stupid ; nay, more,
they arc exasperatingly stupid. We can exciTse
the French poet who located alligators and palm
trees upon the shores of Lake Erie, but when one
of our own flesh and blood, in this age of railroads,
telegraphs, and liberal ideas, does not possess a
school-boy's knowledge of the United States, we
must really protest against such abominable igno-
rance. We cannot accept the silly excuse that it can
not be expected of Englishmen to be acquainted
with the affairs of a country not yet a hundred
years old, and whose habits and customs are not
recognized among the cultured classes of Europe.
The third class of Englishmen that we come in
contact with is the most disagreeable class of peo-
ple imaginable. They are not only grossly igno-
rant about American affairs, but they glory in
parading their wretched ignorance on every avail-
able occasion. They are bigoted, intolerant, and
conceited. These are the individuals who rant in-
terminably about distorted statements relating to
American affairs, derived from hearsay and subsi-
dized government periodicals. These scions of fair
Albion never consider that personal experience
or observation are essential to correct opinions
about the practical features of republicanism. They
convey the impression that an editor who has never
visited the United States is specially endowed with
oracular powers for expounding democratic doc-
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS. 371
trines, exploding democratic theories, and for pre-
dicting the speedy collapse of all institutions not
based upon "blood " and prerogative. Here be-
longs the coarse, the pedantic, the pig-headed
Cockney, who is always on the qui vive to hurl his
guffaws at anything American, and whose ignorance
about things American is only equaled by his
assurance in discussing them. Such are the people
who inquire with languid sympatfiy why Americans
always eat molasses on their pork ! It will be use-
less for you to intimate to them that such is no
more a general custom in America than it is for
Englishmen to drink coffee and treacle together,
for they will insist that Americans themselves say
so. And when you endeavor to enlighten their
minds by informing them theft the American sailors,
from whom they or their ancestors derived that
morsel of information, were only talking about ma-
rine customs, that were by no means an exponent
of general national usage, they will the more vigor-
ously insist upon the correctness of their statement
and plunge into the subject with renewed anima-
tion. They inform you with great satisfaction that
they are able to distinguish an American before he
has spoken three words, — reposing in sublime igno-
rance of the fact that their own brogue and appear-
ance render them equally conspicuous to Americans.
They express intense merriment at Americans tak-
ing only three months to "do" Europe, without
considering that their own countrymen take much
less time for " doing " America, and then seem to
372 LE TTERS FROM JAPAN.
consider themselves capable of discussing any feat-
ure of the country. They take it for granted that
every American is disposed to be boastful, and
therefore organize themselves into a reform com-
mittee to eradicate this idiosyncrasy ; and, while
deeming themselves entitled to assume the perfec-
tion of everything English, and considering it appro-
priate for John Bull to consider himself ne plusultrUy
they manifest unfeigned uneasiness at having other
nations assume the same premises respecting them-
selves, and feel highly scandalized at Brother Jona-
than's most excellent opinion respecting himself.
Being aware that no aristocracy on the Prussian
Blue system exists in America, they infer that
society must be " orridly " common, and that polite
and elegant language is not much used, and, upon
the principle of not casting pearls before swine,
they take no pains to express themselves in the
deferential phrases with which they would address
educated people of their own country, but adopt a
brusque phraseology that borders on the coarse and
impertinent. I have frequently listened in silence
to terms and forms of speech insulting to my coun-
try, because, by taking notice thereof, a noisy alter-
cation would have inevitably ensued. Should the
unkind decrees of mysterious fate ordain that you
should sit opposite to one of these people at a
dinner party, you will find your hands full for the
balance of the meal. You will find him to be as
ignorant of the principles of Lord Chesterfield's
immortal work as a horse is of rhetoric. He is not
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS, 373
aware of the fact that, in a promiscuous company,
national peculiarities should not be offensively
dwelt upon.
Those of our imperial cousins who have been
endowed with thoughtful minds have collected,
from history, and from a study of the social and of
the political institutions of Japan, a very subtle
and highly scientific series of arguments in favor
of monarchical forms of governments. General-
izing from history, they argue that, before and
since the days of the Jewish theocracy when the
people clamored for a king to reign over them,
mankind has always manifested a natural prefer-
ence for monarchical forms of government. These
forms of government, say they, have always been
the most prevalent and the most popular in all
ages and in all countries. Greece and Rome began
as monarchies and ended as monarchies. All the
republics that have ever existed, were eventually
merged into monarchies. Society, in all countries,
has always shown a natural disposition to differen-
tiate itself. You are bound to have your high
classes and your low classes at the social extremes.
Ignorance, poverty, and vice will inevitably form a
substratum, in any community, that will be unfit
to govern itself for any length of time ; and those
classes wherein concentrate wealth, refinement, and
intelligence, will eventually devise methods where-
by to control the masses. Such evolutions of so-
cial differentiations will only be a question of time
in any country, they say.
374 LETTERS FROAf JAPAN.
And, applying their generalizations to Japan,
they fortify their theories with practical illustra-
tions. The Ainos, the aborigines of the country,
were mild tribes of pastoral people living in huts
and caves, and subsisting on the spoils of the chase.
In their primitive state of society, social equality
prevailed. The head man of the hamlet, or of the
village, was on a level with his constituents. Then
came the Malays and the Mongolians with their
superior bravery and intelligence. In the course of
centuries, amalgamation and differentiation evolved
the present triple system of Japanese society, viz.:
the samurai, the tradesmen, and the peasantry.
The descendants of each class naturally inherited
the traits peculiar to that class, until each breed
became so fixed in its characteristics that the feat-
ures and bearing of each class could be readily dis-
tinguished. And even though feudal caste has
been abolished, and all the people are merely sub-
jects before the emperor, yet the samurai class
still is the governing Class, the tradesmen still keep
on in their old avocations, and the peasants wade
in the mud as of yore, hardly being aware of the
vast changes around them, and being just as un-
fitted for governing the empire as if the laws for-
bade them entering the civil service.
Thus will it eventually be in the United States,
they predict. In the course of centuries, the high,
the middle, and the low classes will differentiate
themselves into well defined types of the commu-
nity. The ranks of trade will be filled with the
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS. 375
descendants of those who manifested peculiar fit-
ness for mercantile pursuits in by-gone years, and
who have transmitted to their progeny their own
peculiar mercantile aptitude and proclivities. The
laboring classes will naturally be composed of the
descendants of laborers. And those families that
have held money and land for many generations,
will develop into keen, intelligent, diplomatic classes
of people who will be naturally fitted for the pro-
fessions and for politics, having the inclination, the
training, and the leisure to devote thereto. And,
in the course of centuries, we will have three dis-
tinct classes of society transmitting to their de-
scendants their own peculiar tastfts, inclinations,
characteristics and features, until we have, like the
Japanese, almost three distinct races. When that
time comes, then will the higher classes naturally
absorb power and prerogative. Citing our immi-
gration, they predict that in a few years there will
be vast masses of Chinese in the United States,
who, in connection with the millions of negroes
already in the country, will form a substratum of
society having but little aptitude or inclination for
self-government, and expecting to be governed by
the more enterprising and imperious Caucasians.
This Caucasian clement will be like the Malay ele-
ment in Japan — fiery, intelligent, capable of gov-
erning. It will naturally form an aristocratic class.
And then, as aristocrats must have a court and a
monarchy, we will have, in the course of time, these
institutions established in the United States. While
376 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
a country is young and growing, a republican form
of government is all well enough, they say; but
when it has become well settled, it naturally be-
comes conservative and monarchical in all its ten-
dencies. In short, the ideas of our imperial cous-
ins, when reduced to a definite proposition, is,
that^ in political matters^ a cultured mifiority must
govern the vulgar majority; which principle, they
claim, will eventually prevail in the United States.
*' Behold ! how intensely monarchical in all their
tendencies are all your Southern States. Virginia,
Maryland, North Carolina, South Carolina, Georgia,
and Louisiana, were all christened in honor of
European monarchs ; they were settled by an aris-
tocratic element, by the sons of impecunious gen-
try, by the shoddy patrician classes, if you so
please to express it, who emigrated, under the
auspices and under the leadership of noblemen, to
seek in the rich fields and favorable climate of the
relaxing latitudes of the South the necessaries and
the luxuries of life without being subjected to the
severe toil and to the bitter climatic vicissitudes
endured by the settlers of bleak New England.
The salubrity and the fertility of the South having
thus attracted the Bohemian clement of British
aristocracy, there naturally sprang up in those re-
gions the customs and manners of patricians. A
powerful slave aristocracy was rapidly developed,
which perpetually collided with the republican ten-
dencies of the plebeian North, and which would
eventually have terminated in monarchy had it not
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS, 377
been crushed at frightful cost." Such, I ween,
would be the ideas of our thoughtful imperial
cousins, when captured and expressed in intell-
igible English. The shrewd and crafty aristocracy
of England had long known how matters were
drifting in the South, and, from the commencement
of the conflict, gave their unqualified and hearty
support to the mediaeval confederacy of Calhoun;
and, like an evil spirit, stood ever ready to sow dis-
sension, and to widen the gap between the North
and the South — between republicanism and mo-
narchical tendencies, between a higher and nobler
development of democratic institutions and the
evolution of a patrician condition of society with
all its selfish and conservative theories. From afar,
they saw that this mediaeval aristocracy and con-
federacy must either develop into feudalism or into
monarchy; in either case, republicanism, with all its
hated tendencies, would be destroyed ; the white
man would forever be the imperious samurai^ the
black man would forever be the laboring heimin ;
and the republic of the North would be perpet-
ually menaced by the foothold thus gained by
monarchy on the North American Continent. The
establishment of a European monarchy by force
of arms in the republic of Mexico, during the prog-
ress of our Civil War, was thoroughly in harmony
with the spirit of the British aristocracy.
But it is needless to state that untoward events
demolished the schemes of the diplomatic patri-
cians of the old world, yet, while we have crushed
378 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
the armies of the Rebellion, we must admit that it
will take a long time for the old tendencies to fade
away. We must be ever vigilant to check the
advances of the old slave aristocracy. It will be
cheaper for us to keep the South in the Union
than to allow a vast and hostile monarchy to be
established beside our Northern republic; to be
compelled to fortify thousands of miles of frontier ;
and to be compelled to keep a standing army equal
in size to the vast legions that the Southern
empire would probably keep under arms at all
times. These, however, are problems for the fu-
ture to solve. I, for my part, do not think we will
fulfill the predictions or conform to the ingenious
deductions of our imperial cousins.
Undoubtedly there is considerable truth in the
foregoing enunciation. There can be no question
that monarchical forms of government have cer-
tainly been the most common in the world.
Equally evident is it that society will differentiate
itself to a certain extent in every country. We
have, and always have had, in the United States,
laboring classes, mercantile classes, and moneyed
classes decidedly aristocratic in their tendencies.
I do not think that these three general classes can
ever be done away with. There always must be social
inequality in this world until the spirit of Christ
has permeated all classes and has imbued every-
body with neighborly feelings of kindness and con-
sideration for mankind in general. We can never
make laws to compel select circles of beatified
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS. 379
snobs to admit the public in general to their social
communings. Just fancy the utter absurdity in-
volved in attempting to say through our legis-
latures to the old Knickerbocker families of New-
York, or to the haughty aristocracy of the South-
ern States, "Admit the public at large to all your
social gatherings ; to wit : to your balls, to your
dinner parties, to your house-warmings ; be per-
fectly impartial to every one ; show no social
preferences of any description whatsoever ; call
upon everybody, and receive calls from every-
body."
Social sets and cliques, based upon likes and
dislikes, similarity of tastes, and upon worldly
prosperity, will invariably be organized wherever
men congregate in communities, whether in mon-
archies or republics. And these social inequalities
are perfectly consistent with our theories of politi-
cal equality. But we and our descendants must be
vigilant and prevent selfish and ambitious families
from using their social advantages as a basis upon
which to found political prerogative and privilege.
Here lies the danger of the future. There can be
no disgrace in candidly admitting this. Let us
clearly understand it, and let us be perpetually on
guard; then will our democratic institutions be
safe.
I think that, as we develop the principles of the
Gospels in our social and political affairs, we will
find the true solution of this complicated question.
Some will treat this confession of faith with con-
380 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
temptuous derision. But let us look into facts a
little, and see if they do not support our view.
Although the Constitution of the United States
does not recognize any creed or religion, yet the
principles upon which it is founded are eminently
Christian in spirit. Equality, justice, and good-
will toward all nations, breathe all through it.
And, in obedience to the directions contained
therein, the whole policy of our government has
been to elevate and benefit the poor and weak
members of the community ; and it extends these
privileges to any nation whose people show any
disposition to become part of the commonwealth.
Has there ever been such liberality as this in the
history of nations ? Is it not thoroughly Christian ?
It has introduced into the world a description of
political equality that will permit the development
of such characters as Abraham Lincoln from a raw-
boned peasant into a President. Who can deny
that these doctrines and principles, when consist-
ently practiced by every one, will develop a spirit
of mutual consideration and confidence? When
the poor cease to envy the fortuitous condition of
the wealthy, and when those favored by fortune
cease to be supercilious and selfish, then will be
consummated a condition of society dimly forecast
by the prophets. It is safe to say that in propor-
tion as the principles of the Gospels have been
faithfully and honestly applied to politics and to
society, in that same proportion have they become
elevated and liberalized.
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS. 38 1
In my very humble opinion, Christ's kingdom
will be nothing more nor less than a universal
republic wherein social and political equality will
be secured by mutual consideration and kindness
among all classes and nations. This state of affairs
will prevail just as soon as mankind will allow it to
do so. Christianity is the only equalizer in the
world. The poorest may practice its precepts and
secure that refinement of sentiment and action
which mere rank and riches fail to bestow. It
alone teaches that the chief end of life is the sub-
jection of the appetites and passions to the purer
and nobler impulses of the soul. Its principles,
when applied to the details of every-day life,
become a profound and wonderful science ; a com-
plicated problem whose terms are ever varying,
whose objective point is always self-conquest,
whose arena is the human heart and brain, and
whose factors are the soul and the evil tendencies
of the flesh. All must fight the same battle. The
rich perhaps may fight under more favorable cir-
cumstances ; but, on the other hand, more is ex-
pected of them. The samurai acquires a polished
bearing and diction from his favorable surround-
ings ; but it is only a social veneer ; he carries
beneath it a cruel and lustful heart ; he is admon-
ished to combat these vile tendencies of his nature
and to subdue them ere he can enter the kingdom
of Christ. The heimin, on the other hand, born
into life with gross passions and ambitionless emo-
tions, is directed to eliminate his coarse appetites
382 LETTERS FROM JAPAN,
and to develop the obtuse and dwarfed faculties of
his mind. The precepts of Christianity demand of
one that he should crush his foul and treacherous
instincts ; of the other, his splenetic idiosyn-
crasies. Each must battle with those failings
peculiar to himself ; succeeding in this, their souls
harmonize and are brought into congenial fellow-
ship ; herein they become equal.
I care not what may be a man's nationality ;
provided his soul is sincerely struggling with the
base elements of his nature, he is my friend. If I
see an Englishman leading a life of shame in these
regions, I feel mortified and grieved. Dr. Johnson
may not have had the manners of a horse, accord-
ing to the standard of the patrician Chesterfield,
but, beneath his boorish exterior, there dwelt the
instincts of a Christian gentleman ; while beneath
the social veneer of the noble lord, there lurked
the heart of a crafty and salacious scoundrel, who
would not have hesitated to corrupt the purity of
any household in Christendom, who instilled his
infernal creed into the youthful mind of his son,
and whose wretched precepts and example form but
a miserable excuse for his fast young countrymen
in the East.
When all classes and all nations practice the
principles enunciated in the Gospels in all the de-
tails of their lives, I apprehend that there will be
but little collision between the peoples and the
nations of the earth. This peaceful condition is
the one toward which mankind seems to be rapidly
OUR IMPERIAL COUSINS, 383
drifting, — a universal republic, Christ's kingdom,
the millennium, whatever you choose to call it.
But whatever the future may bring forth, let our
imperial cousins be mindful of the fact that, during
the past century, Europe and England have de-
veloped strong democratic tendencies. Let them
not be oblivious of the fact that Great Britain is
far more liberal and democratic now than she was
a hundred years ago ; that she has been steadily
coming up to the level of the American standard
of politics for many years ; that this progress on
her part is rapidly lessening the difference between
our two systems of government ; and that if she
goes on in the same ratio of improvement, she will
soon be a republic. We do not believe the doc-
trine that a cultivated minority can best govern the
majority of the people in an intelligent and Chris-
tian community. We believe that in such com-
munities the sentiment of the majority, upon all
political questions, is apt to be safer and sounder
than the sentiment of the minority ; and that the
sentiment of that majority, fairly, candidly, and
conscientiously expressed, should always be sover-
eign. Cultured minorities may reach shrewd con-
clusions, but they are frequently exceedingly selfish
in their doctrines and policies. No, my imperial
cousins, we will not discuss this matter any further.
We will let the future demonstrate which is the
safer and sounder theory. But I am inclined to
think that the logic of facts will speedily demon-
strate to the satisfaction of mankind that suffrage,
384 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
based upon man as the unit of political power, is
the best, the safest, and the most satisfactory of all
sovereigns.
And now, Julius Marcellus, I shall probably not
write any more letters from Kioto. I am not en-
joying the best of health here, and it is time to be
returning to my own country to resume my inter-
rupted studies. I am seriously thinking of resign-
ing my position and returning home by way of
India and Europe. My route has been long laid
out, and I have been steadily growing impatient to
start off. My next letter will be definite upon this
matter, and, till then, farewell !
TiiEOPHiLUS Pratt.
LETTER XXI.
FAREWELL TO JAPAN.
Yokohama, January 8, 1878.
Dear Julius Marcellus:
The time has now come for me to bid farewell
to Japan. I resigned my position in Kioto last
month, and have been supremely busy ever since in
making preparations for my departure from these
very pleasant shores. There are many strong rea-
sons that have combined to urge me to decide to
leave this country.
In the first place, I have contracted a stubborn
intermittent fever, derived, I presume, from sleep-
ing on the floor in the temple at Kioto. My con-
tract being only for one year, I did not feel dis-
posed to waste money on a bedstead, and therefore
adopted the Japanese method of repose, which I
am now prepared to characterize as not only un-
comfortable, but decidedly unhealthy, as the foul
air from beneath the house thus finds ready access
to your lungs. I presume that I have also aggra-
vated my malady by a series of colds which I have
taken in the school-room and in my Kioto man-
25
386 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
sion. In the high rooms of the temple it was
almost impossible to keep myself warm, even with
a red-hot stove. In vain did I paper up all the
crevices of my study, hoping thus to keep in the
heat, for I discovered that the shojees allowed the
warm air to filter through them as if they had been
sieves.
In the second place, I found myself rapidly be-
coming a confirmed dyspeptic from the bad habit
of hastily swallowing my food. Eating my meals
all alone, without any enlivening conversation, was
also very injurious to my digestion. My breakfast
was usually disposed of in silence ; my lunch was
always a minus quantity, as the school was three
miles from home ; and my dinner was devoured
with a ravenous appetite, whetted to the keenest
of edges by the long walks of the day. The soli-
tude and the silence were becoming unendurable.
I had enough of that experience in Hirosaki. Life
in Kioto, of course, was not nearly so lonely as
that up north, but, taken in connection with the
feverish condition of my system, it seemed to
make it prudent for me to terminate my engage-
ment.
In the third place, if I wish to settle down in my
own country, it is high time to be returning.
Nearly a quarter of a century has passed over my
head, and, with my professional studies in view,
time is becoming exceedingly valuable. Although
Japan has a lovely climate and the most beautiful
scenery, yet so different arc the people from our-
FAREWELL TO JAPAN. 387
selves in thought, sentiment, and aspiration, that it
would be impossible for me to affiliate and to grow
up with them.
But it is not without much regret that I take
leave of this charming land. I have spent four
exceedingly happy years here, and I shall always
look back to this period of my life with feelings of
profound pleasure. My trips over lake, mountain,
and river will forever be bright spots in my
memory, that the flight of years may render dim,
but can never erase.
I take this occasion to thank you for the many
kind letters with which you have favored me dur-
ing my exile. It is a matter of regret to me that
I shall now be deprived of the pleasure of hearing
the postman at my gate announcing the arrival of
letters from home. You, who get your mails every
day, can have but faint conception of the thrill of
joyful expectancy experienced by us who receive
ours but once a fortnight. I shall be amply satis-
fied if my own rambling correspondence shall have
afforded you one-half of the pleasure that yours
has afforded me.
I do not expect ever to return to Japan. Pos-
sibly in the dim future I may revisit the scenes of
my youthful sojourn in these regions. But it will
never be the same country to me again. It will
have undergone vast changes, — all for the better,
no doubt, — but it will but shadow forth the quaint
reminiscences of the past. There is a lovely strain
in the Deserted Village that floats through my
388 LETTERS FROM JAPAN.
memory as I write these closing lines. Let me
conclude by quoting it :
** Sweet Auburn ! Parent of the blissful hour !
Thy glades forlorn confess the tyrant's power.
Here, as I take my solitary rounds,
Amidst thy tangling walks and mined grounds.
And, many a year elapsed, return to view
Where once the cottage stood, the hawthorn grew, —
Remembrance wakes with all her busy train,
Swells at my breast, and turns the past to pain."
Sincerely yours,
Theophilus Pratt.
INDEX.
PACK
Ainos 55
Assassinations — causes of . . . ioq
Avenues 86
Awomori— description of . . . . 40
** journey to 41
** meeting scholars
at 41
" night scene in. . . 41
hotel in 42
Ban-Cho 147
Bell of Chioin Monastery. . . .246
British Legation in Tokio — 146
Browbeating the Japanese —
sample of 122
Buddhist Monasteries in Ja-
pan 315
Buddhism compared with
Christianity 318
Capital and Labor in Japan. .356
Cascades at Nikko 186
Chapel of lyiyas at Nikko. . . 183
Chiusenji Lake 175
Christianity discussed by Jap-
anese Scholars 165
Civilization and Beefsteak . . . 224
Civilization and Religion —
correlative terms 214
Complexion of Japanese. ... 338
Compositions — samples of . . . 168
Conjugal Relations of the Jap-
anese 346
Court Scene in Hakodate. . . 105
Dai-Butz at Nara 262
Daimios -description of 65
life of 66
*' poetry of 68
PAGB
Death of Buddha— note 258
Death of Saigo 301
Defender of the Faith 213
Desima 143
Dogs — idiosyncrasies describ-
ed 178
Dutch — annual visit to Yeddo. 137
Ejinsan — treatment of native
house 153
Ejinsan— what 131
Empress Jingo 22a
Endless Mountain 238
English Press in Yokohama. 366
Execution of the Assassin. . . 107
Family Jars 348
Farewell to Hirosaki 127
Farewell Address from Direc-
tors 128
Feudal Customs — decadence. 71
Feudal Government describ-
ed 76
Foreign Teachers in Japan . . 84
Fujiyama 272
* ' appearance from
summit 281
climbing 277
cone 279
descent 285
general features of
landscape 275
huts on summit ... 282
routes to 273
view at base 275
view at summit. . . .282
Kakku-Gi — temple.
Gin
Godown — definition of.
247
139
390
INDEX.
PACE
Hakodate — description of . . . 38
" foreign popula-
tion of 39
" battle in 39
journey to 38
Hara-Kiri 139; no
Hebachi 151
Hirosaki — my house 49 ; 82
" meeting scholars. 49
*' horseback ride to. 44
*' description of . . . . 36
" " school. 82
*' my Boy 90
" his eccentricities. . 91
" musical dogs 96
Hotel Bill — sami)le of. 221
House-keeping in Tokio . . . .153
Inland Sea 191
Ise Temples 230
Iwaki-san 351 53
lyemitsu — shrines of 184
lyeyas . 68
Japanese Singing 88
love of novelty in
religious matters. .203
" village scener)' 45
" kou'tiKL'ing 46
" soldiers 57
" Castles — origin... 58
" " general
features. 59
" " one at Hi- j
rosaki. . 59
" " audience
chamber. . 63
" " present con-
dition .... 64
•' red tape — sample of. 120
Jesuit Priest in Hirosaki 113
Jinriksha 132
Kago 132
Kai-Sei-Gakko 148
Kamakura Image 267
Kayaki Wood 306
Kii Province 232
Kioto — routes to 244
*' general characteris-
tics 248
PACK
Kioto — my house 251
'* neighbors 252
'* Boy 256
population 244
temples 245
" Chioin temple 246
" religious features. .. .248
' ' character of people . . 248
holiday of courtesans. 249
'* picnics 250
Kin-Kakku-Gi 246
Kobe 190
Kobu-Daishi 239
Kumamolo Castle 295
" siege 297
Lake Biwa 304
Laws of lyiyas 68 ; 71
Lifeof Priests in Monasteries.317
Mikado 7i ; 73
-Mining Department 145
Missions in 1 okio 198
*' ** Yokohama 199
Mitsu-Bishi Company 189
Mitsui Bank 216
Mission Work in Yokohama. 199
" " hostility to. . . .205
Monastery of Coyasan 239
Monastery of Hiyeisan 306
" priest^;. 308
" slaugh-
ter of
priests. 309
" " " view
from 311
Mukojima — cherry groves. . . 158
Nagasaki 191
Nara--temple 261
** dimensions of image. 263
" bell.. .266
New- Year's calling in Japan . 137
Nihon-Bashi 136
Nikko Village 1 79
Nikko Temples 179
Nir\'ana 313
Norimon 86
Ono Village 225
Owari Castle 63 : 228
Pacific Railway 2
INDEX.
391
fac;k
Pacitic Steamers — embarking. 7
•* •' starting... 8
*• " class of
passengers. 6
*' " voyage. ... 10
♦' *' table scene. 11
Pappenbeig 193
Pilgrimages of Natives 174
Politeness of Japanese 139
Promiscuous Bathing 187
Province of Omi — produc-
tions. 221
** Mino " 228
•• " Owari " 229
" " Iga " ...230
" Kii 233
" " Akitah— assas-
sin lOI
Reception near Hirosaki ... 46
Rice Diet 237
Roman Catholics in Japan . . 1 1 1
Samurai — descriptio.i 73, 76
Satsuma Rebellion— causes. .291
" Samurai 291
Rebellion— Saigo . . 288
** " outbreak. 292
Sak^ — use of, by Japanese. . .335
School-boys in Tokio 155
School-teachers' occupation. . 157
Schools in Tokio 162
School Contract— sample 37
Sci-O-Ken— hotel 144
Shaka 312
.Shimonos^ki affair 367
Shintoism 231
Sho^n's Position — defined . . 72
Shojees 62
Shodo Shionin— legend con-
cerning 180
Sir Harry Parke's Visit to
Emperor 299
Summer Recreations in Japan 173
Takada — Prince of Iga 224
Takashima Coal Mines 194
Tatamis — descriptive note. . . 42
Teaching — how conducted. . . 163
Theatres 159
PAGE
Tobacco — use of 333
Tomb of Tokugawa lyeyas. . 183
Tokio — geological features. . 132
" '* doing" of 134
Tokio Climate 149
** Asakusa Temple 135
" Conflagrations 150
" Uy^no Park 135
*' Society 151
Toogu — Gakko 36
Tokugawa House 68
Traveling by Jinrikisha. . . . 176
Truancy of Scholars 167
Tsukidji 143
Tsuruga 223
Tycoon 71
Tsuruga Dai 148
Tsugaru Straits 35
Umoto Sulphur Springs 187
Wine in Japan 337
Woman Suffrage in Japan. . .350
Various Classes of English-
men 368
Yakunin — defined 77
Vamato-Vashiki 144
Vashiki 132
Veddo— features 137
fires 138
'* earthquakes 139
" merchants 140
Yesso 55
Yokohama — arrival 17
" description 2i
" Curio Street ... 22
Bluffs 21
" Mississippi Bay.. 23
U. S. Naval
Hospital 24
" social features.. 24
" rifle range 23
'* recreations 25
Dramatic Associ-
ation 27
" public gardens. . 27
" newspapers .... 28
" trade 31
Yoshiwara System 342
RETURN
-QANPERIOD
CIRCUlATlOMMPARTrAENT^.^^^
202 Mai
rTRRXRY~UST
FORAA
:^...^^--^^^r-
.SlU I 'I /l"'!'^
■ Berkeley
YB 29050
4753-18
UNIVERSITY OF CAUFORNIA LIBRARY